The Empire of The Amorites 1000323912
The Empire of The Amorites 1000323912
The Empire of The Amorites 1000323912
YALE
ORIENTAL
SERIES
"
RESEARCHES
"
VOLUME
VI
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES
BY
ALBERT
T. CLAY
NEW
HAVEN PRESS
OXFORD UNIVERSITY
PRESS
YALE
LONDON
"
UNIVERSITY
MILFORD
"
HUMPHREY
MDCCCCXIX
Copyright,
1919,
by
Yale
University
Press.
THE
ALEXANDER
KOHUT FUND.
MEMORIAL
PUBLICATION
University
Fund. This
Press
on
the
Foundation
established October 13, 1915, by a gift to Yale University from of enabling scholars to publish members of his family for the purpose in the Semitic field of research. texts and monographs Ph.D. Kohut, Reverend guished The Alexander (Leipzig),a distinthe fund has been memory scholar, in whose April 22, 1842, of a noted family established, was born in Hungary, Ahavath Chesed in pastor of the Congregation of rabbis. When
Oriental
New
York He
City, he became
and
was
one a
Seminary,
death.
was
a
logical of the founders of the Jewish Theoprofessor in that institution until his
noted pulpit orator, able to discourse with equal in three languages. Among his contributions to Semitic mastery learning is the monumental Completum, an work Aruch paedic encycloin eight volumes. Semitic and of the Talmud, Oriental scholars have honored his memory by inscribing to bim a 1 volume of Semitic Studies (Berlin, 897). dictionary
0)
TO
GEORGE
A.
BARTON,
Ph.D.,
LL.D.
MY
ESTEEMED
COLLEAGUE
AND
FEIEND
PREFACE Sayce and Wright about forty years ago brought to the attention of those interested in Ancient History the forgotten empire of the
Hittites.
The
study
which
in the decades
Another
ence nearly forgotten empire which exerted a powerful influthe Amorite, is also the surrounding nations, namely upon to light through brought similar investigations of the last few literature; but this empire decades, largely in the cuneiform belonged to the period justprior to the ascendancy of the Hittites.
study showing that the religion and culture of Israel are not of Babylonian origin, nians the thesis was that the culture of the Semitic Babyloadvanced
in the land had, if not its origin, at least a long development before it was carried into Babylonia ; and that the of the Amorites from Babylonia, not importations religion and culture of Israel were
In Amurru,
the Home
of the
Northern
Semites,
naturally
in their
own
land from
an
earlier
in Germany
Babylonia
with most ideas, including monotheism; in fact, the members of this school held that the civilization of Israel generally had its origin in Babylonia.
had
Winckler,
the founder
to show of the school, endeavored other leaders of Israel, as Joshua, Gideon, solar or lunar deities of the Babylonians.
Delitzsch called Canaan domain a at the time of the exodus of Babylonian Gunkel held that Israel's religion had assimiculture. lated it had become this Babylonian actively material, and when in strength, it swallowed the foreign elements, feathers found that elements of the Marduk and all. Zimmern cult were his death was applied to Christ : even suggested by that of Marduk But the most extreme Jensen, who found and Tammuz. of all was relaxed
(9)
10
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
that all the biblical characters, from Abram John the Baptist, were simply borrowed myths. In popularizing that
these theories,
as
to Christ, even
ing includsun-
from
Babylonian
far-reachwell as others not so ing, arose certain American and English scholars resorted to all kinds of efforts to pare them down so as to make the borrowings them more palatable: by making early instead of in Germany,
that when
late, proposing
Israel entered Palestine they were part it appear the mental possession of the people; or by making of that these Babylonian myths were simply used in a devotional way
to illustrate ethical implications, or a more spiritual faith. In many
as
media
of
quarters, scholars gravitated it was and conceded generally that there was dependence a considerable Babylonia. Reflections of these upon revolutionary ideas flared up almost everywhere. The purpose to examine was the data upon of the study Amurru
toward
this theory;
which
the theories rested; the results were such that it could be Israel did not adopt the civilization of the Babylonians asserted that and that they were not the purveyors religious of borrowed
ideas
from Babylonia. The myths study of the cultural influence, for elements of both lands did not show such Babylonian language apart from the use of the Babylonian and syllabary in the West, the evidence from the Neolithic to the Greek period is and
To cite a single test, Ellil was the name wanting. of the chief god Nergal was of Babylonia until Marduk supplanted him. also a deity. The thesis Amurru well known Babylonian maintained that
of Amorite deities which had arisen in Babylonia largely because of the form in which they had been written : En-lil, Amar-Utug, Even though this proves incorrect, and Ne-Uru-Gal.
were names
these
if Babylonia
with its religion and culture, where is the influence of these deities seen? The single use of the ideogram Ne-TJru-Gal on the Ta'anach seal proves nothing, for it doubtless reproduces the name But where in of an Amorite god. the West
do
we
which
1
we
know
Nergal,1
Post-exilic
names
"the
PREFACE.
11
presented not only to demonstrate that the Panbut also to show that the Babylonists' claims must be abandoned, elements from which the Semitic Babylonian religion had largely The thesis
was
evolved Amurru
land, or in the land of their origin in the West culture being imported ; and that, instead of the Hebrew from Babylonia, it had grown naturally from up and developed down from generations older and indigenous civilizations which had come To make this appear reaching far back into the ages. had quity antibeen
to show that there was an necessary reasonable, it became for the civilization of this Semitic land which had hitherto unrecognized.
fully expected that out of the mass of details offered in would seize upon substantiation of the thesis, certain reviewers It
was
such
as
be readily recognized as doubtful by the casual would Mingled with the hundreds of facts presented in Amurru, many comparisons and suggested identifications set forth,
on the that the unbiased investigator recognized were not "put level." For as one "It is sufficient merit same scholar wrote: to have opened up new vistas of the ancient culture of the Northern if some Semites ; and even of the points emphasized, and Western
unduly, should not turn out to be supports for the theories, than enough and more remains to substantiate the main enough thesis that the Amorites at an entered Babylonia early period perhaps and the worship of certain gods and cosmological and designate as Babylonian traditions with them, and that what we other ments elereligion is the result of the mixture of these Amoritish Valley."2 those indigenous to the Euphrates with
It
was
brought
appeal It was
cause
that such an innovation would not thought for a moment to Winckler and his followers, abroad or in this country. that such a reactionary view would not even contemplated
the casting aside of the cherished Pan-Babylonian theories by those who had adopted them as their own. And yet the publications since the appearance of the book in 1909 show that the literature suddenly stream of Pan-Babylonian to an almost insignificant rivulet. gratifying has been the number in various comment publications, or
2
changed
from
rent tor-
Most
Prof. J. A. Montgomery
in The
Nation, March
12
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
point of view; and even of those who, though unable to see their way clear to reverse completely their position, have realized that the cumulative proof presented is evidence of that requires serious consideration. a character
accepted
new
the
in no sense was as an meant work Amurru apologetic effort in the interests of the traditional view of the Old Testament. It The
was
not
intended
the
to minimize
brought
current
myths
or
the fact that the biblical writers legends, with which they were
monotheistic concepacquainted, into accord with their advanced tion It did, however, defend the universe. of the government of historical existence of such personages as Abraham, vigorously the
Moses, etc.,as well as of a patriarchal period. "While there was no apologetic effort intended, the conclusion which resulted tended
to emphasize the reliabilityof the main outlines of the early history of the Hebrews and neighboring peoples as recorded in the Old
Testament.
purpose of the present contribution is to assemble all the light that bears upon the history and religion of the Amorites, especially of that early period when the empire stillexisted; to
The
corroborate the great antiquity that the writer has claimed for this people in making them one of the earliest known ; to show that Ur of the Chaldees was the capital of the Amorite very probably empire ; incidentally to offer additional evidence in substantiation that the generally of the thesis of Amurru; and to demonstrate accepted theory baseless.
of the Arabian
is utterly
It would be rash to imagine that all the multitudinous details forth will pass the test of future searching inquiry. Inevitable set alterations and difference of opinion manifestly will result from their presentation ; yet it is fully expected that the main outlines will stand the test.
writer is indebted to bis colleague Prof. C. C. Torrey, to Prof. A. T. Olmstead, Doctor Ettalene M. Grice and Doctor Henry F. Lutz for valuable suggestions, and assistance rendered in connection with the manuscript and proofreading. Albeet
New Haven,
The
T. Clay.
Conn.,
11, 1918.
November
CONTENTS.
Page
17 27 50 53 58
II III
of the Semites
Amurru
Country
IV
V
Excavations
The
Races
VI VII
VIII IX
X
of Amurru
61
66
Amurru
Uru
in Babylonia in Amurru
76 95
100 Ill 121 131
Babylonians
XI XII XIII
Kingdoms
in Cappadocia
XIV
XV
and Amurru
in the Old Testament and Amurru
138
152
Amorites
Assyria
XVT XVII
156
162
The
Deities of Amurru
(13)
ABBREVIATIONS
A ABL ABB
ADD AE
"
Barton,
Harper,
Archaeology Assyrian
Johns, An
Johns,
Assyrian
Assyrian
Deeds
Miiller, Asien
AJT
AJSL
Amurru AKA
of Theology. American of Semitic Languages. Clay, Amurru the Home of the Northern Semites. King, The Annals of the Kings of Assyria.
American Journal Tallqvist, Assyrian
Briinnow, A
zur
und Journal
APN
B
Personal
Names.
BA Babyloniaca BAR BE
BRM
Beitrage
of Egypt.
Expedition Records
Catalogue
Catalogue
of the
of the University of Pennsylvania. of J. Pierpont Morgan. tion. Cuneiform Tablets in the Kouyunjik Collecin the Library
Clay PN
Chron
Clay, Personal
King,
Names
(YOR
I).
CT
EBL EM
Babylonian
Kings.
Lutz, Early
Babylonian
Letters
from
(TBT
II).
Miiller, Egyptian
Races.
Mythology;
of all
HB HE
King, A
HLC
JA
of Babylon. Breasted, A History of Egypt. Barton, Haverford Library Collection of Cuneiform Tablets.
Journal
Journal
History
Asiatique.
JAOS
JBL
JRAS
KB KAT3
of the American Oriental Society. Journal of Biblical Literature. Journal of the Royal Asiatic Society. Bibliothek. Keilinschriftliche Zimmern and Winckler, Die Keilinschriften und
Testament.
das
Alte
(15)
16 KTA
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
Messerschmidt, Thureau-Dangin,
aus Keilschrifttexte
Assur.
LC
Lettres
et Contrats
de I'epoque
de la premiere
Dynastie
Babylonienne.
LIB. MBI
King,
MDOG
MI
Mitteilungen
der Deutschen
Orient-Gesellschaft.
lection Col-
Clay, Miscellaneous
(YBT I).
Miscln
MVAG OLZ PSBA R
RA
"Weissbach, Babylonische
der Verbffentlichungen Deutschen der V orderasmtischen Orient alistische Literatur-Zeitung. Mitteilungen Proceedings
Rawlinson,
Revue
Asia.
RBBA
d'Assyriologie
Ranke RS SA SBH
PN
Ranke,
Revue
Early
Babylonian
Personal
Semitique.
Hymnen.
Ta'annek,
Ta'annek
in Sellin Tell
Ta'annek. TSBA
Transactions The
UMBS
VB
tion. Sec-
Vorderasiatische Bibliothek.
Yale
TS
YBC
YBT
Oriental
Series
"
"
Babylonian Researches.
Texts.
YOR
ZA
Oriental Series
INTRODUCTION
evidence of the early existence of the Amorites, as well as largely theory, depends the proof of the futility of the Arabian a study of countries, cities, temples, deities, and upon of names
The
persons.
welcome founder
occasional historical reference is found which throws light upon the subject, for example, the origin of the as to the invasion of the land, or a of a dynasty, an allusion An
But in determining etc. suzerainty of the country, data upon which historical events origins or influences, and even important evidence available at present based, there is no more are
title showing
In not a even a single upon for example, it rested alone upon the resemblance name; of the Humbaba Humba, an name epic to the name of the Gilgamesh Elamitic god, that the belief that the cedar forest scenes of the epic
were
laid in Elam,
which, however,
or
Amanus
districts,
mistake
(seeChapter
thousand
personal to all
VIII).
There
are
known
than
hundred
written upon clay tablets belonging which were history. Having the opportunity periods of Babylonian ing of studyit becomes names a particular country, such large masses of of to single out or designate with considerable accuracy possible what
names
is foreign and what is not. A large number in Babylonian literature do of foreign names it impossible to not contain any known elements, which fact makes identify their source; but thanks to our increasing knowledge of the cultural elements of certain peoples, at least those of a general exact knowledge character, and more of the civilization of others,
it is quite possible to identify with the one hand that are Babylonian on
that
are
names considerable accuracy Sumerian, and on the other or Cassite, Hittite, Mitannian, Elamitic, Persian, Hebrew,
Egvptian,
18
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
from a readily be determined of these nationalities can but even the nationality of knowledge of their nomenclatures; quently frehave littleknowledge in languages can names of which we
Most
to start with we may be familiar belonging to a foreign people, it nevertheless with only a few names to identify many scores becomes soon of others as possible know For example, we may that belonging to the same people.
be identified. Although
Teshub
was
the
name
in Mitanni. found
Names
as
was
can
set apart
Hittite, or Mitannian.
The
that
are
of other with names combined with Teshub are compounded deities, which enables us to increase the list,at least tentatively. be continued until a surprisingly large list of This process can in thus assembling and words is collected. The possibility of error determining foreign
names,
of whose language we ; but nevertheless, although such lists of foreign names suffer the method leads to permanent results. modification, found on tablets from Babylonia The foreign names represent
well as words, belonging to peoples have little perhaps no knowledge, is recogor nized
as
in contact with those who lived in the valley the peoples that came instances only isolated In some of the Tigris and Euphrates. belonging to a particular of names, and again masses instances such influx of foreigners is caused In many people. the by migrations or conquests ; a foreign nation has invaded brought land; or these alien names represent peoples who were
examples
occur,
settled in it. These foreign names, of rulers, make with the personal names instances to reconstruct considerable history
who
names
Amorite
example, in the time of ManishThe names occur. of the rulers of the dynasties, which were contemporaneous,
For
in the legal and epistolary literature of the latter part of the third millennium influence. The names B. C, show the same of the rulers of the Cassite period bear Cassite names, and the documents of this time
names
character, and also Hittite-Mitannian abound in the Assyrian inscriptions, after is true in the carried into captivity. The same
same
I.
INTRODUCTION.
19
Neo-Babylonian
In the Persian
some
Egyptian
period after Judah had been carried into captivity. Persian and names, many period, besides Hebrew due to the rule the latter apparently occur, names
to be expected, in the And as was of the Persian kings in Egypt. found. Besides the large masses Greek period, Greek names are in in the various periods can smaller groups of foreign names,
many
instances
names
be accounted
for.
in certain periods deciding questions bearing on invasions, migrations, influence, etc. In brief, the study of names, together with isolated historical facts
peoples, has made gathered from the records of contemporaneous it possible to create at least the outlines of the history of certain the political histoiy and religion of the history land Amurru all our knowledge of Hebrew would embrace and religion, the early legends and primitive religions of Palestine the history and religion touched referred to in the Old Testament,
on
upon
in the Amoraic
B. C,
as
of the early period, Incidental references are made, when the Amorite empire existed. however, to certain facts belonging to the later period, from Egyptian belonging
We
are
inscriptions of the first millennium and Aramaic It in the later Greek and Roman sources. well as to emphasize especially of the present study, however,
belonging
to the history
which
throw
light upon
questions
chiefly in the Amorites of the third, fourth, and fifth millenniums B. C, when the great empire of the Amorites is that the Semites existed, although the prevailing new
came of Amurru out of Arabia as barbarians in the latter part of B. C, and later. True, the knowledge the third millennium we have of their early history is littlemore than a glimmer here and
there, obtained from the records of Babylonia feel the pulse of this people by contact as we in the surrounding lands. It is upon appear
must
and
Egypt,
except
namely, the influence exerted by the Amorites in contact through they came upon peoples with whom their encroachments upon, and invasions of other lands.
;
The
existence
of
an
Amorite
civilization
as
early
as
the Baby-
20
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
furnished Babylonia well as the inference that Amurru with its Semitic inhabitants, as noted, are dependent largely upon inscriptions. Unfortunately the Sumerian at the and Akkadian
Ionian,
as
very
investigation we of our difficultyof differentiating between what Semitic. beginning The fact that
a
are
confronted and
with
what
the is
is Sumerian
in the Sumerian religious idea appears Much does not necessarily imply that it is Sumerian. has already proved to been credited to the Sumerians
name or a
idea of the ziggurrat, for example, being a high worshipped, is generally regarded place, upon which the gods were to be almost entirely due to the idea. This seems a Sumerian as be Semitic.
The
fact that the towers with which they are far as is known, as because
bear Sumerian
connected. that have
names,
as
well
case
as
even
are regarded as having of these names district. from a mountainous come We know of a certainty that in all early periods of which we guage have knowledge, the Semite as well as the Sumerian used the lan-
Semitic.
was
late periods Sumerian of the latter. Even in comparatively gical used for legal purposes ; and up to the very latest, as the liturIt was language. used frequently also for monumental
on
in all periods. Lugal-zaggisi used both languages I, 87, and UMBS V, 34). The same BE his monuments (cf.
purposes true of Sargon
is
(UMBS
V, 34,
and Babylon dynasties. Long ago it was a Semite, when argued that Lugal-zaggisi was inscription was known (BE I, 266-268). It was only his Sumerian also maintained that
names
like Ur-Nina
or (Bau-ukin,
A-Kur(Kalbi-Nind),
Gal
Hero
Dun-Gir
appeared
"the
in
Sumerian Sumerian
other
even names
it is possible to transpose most of the into Semitic, because the ancient Oriental and names in construction and in meaning, had much in common
extent this
was
it cannot be proved to what "While unfortunately be shown to have can actually done, the custom
practiced.
I.
INTKODUCTION.
21
For
example, of Babylonian
were
written
names,
in the period of the Larsa dynasty, the golden era history, we know of Semitic names of places which the exact pronunciation us phonetically, giving of that also written in Sumerian; and in some transposed, for example, Ishkun-Nergal, the are city in the fourteenth year of Rim-Sin, is also
were
these
cases
written
in Sumerian, it is very
NergaJ-gar-ra.1
Also
because
to often difficult know from have to do with we the personal name appears, whether e. (i. Semitic)or a Sumerian.
Akkadian
in
be quite different from Japanese; and in is known to be one the other, in many or
be determined.
was
With
the knowledge,
fore, there-
centre
Semitic,
even
same
we
have
reason
written is true of the names of temples, ziggurrats, and deities. Neis the name Uru-Gal, "Nergal," of a deity in a Sumerian garb, but we know the deity was Semitic.
The
names
though
Semitic, and also that the dynasty was to infer that many of the personal names, in Sumerian, The were actually Semitic.
Sumerian, is true
even
lands, for example, the temples at Aleppo, Harran, Tirqa, etc., bore Sumerian It is impossible to names. explain this at the present time in any other way than that it was due to the fact that the Semites had used the language and script
of the Sumerians
time, of course, prior to our From this we get the impression that we are far earliest records. from the point of having clear ideas as to where and when the Semites first used the Sumerian cuneiform for their language. Naturally, these are problems which can only approach solution
at
a
very
early
the written language of the Semitic the latter peoples other than the Semitic Babylonian, from whom At present, absolutely nothing is known came. of any Semitic after
more
is known
about
script except
1
the Babylonian,
prior
Phoe-
of the Larsa
Dynasty,
22
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOBITES.
alphabetic writing, and this is dated from nician and Aramaic Semites in Cappadocia already used in the third about 1000 B. C. B. C. what we have been regarding as the Babylonian millennium and script. A few tablets found in middle Mesopotamia lonian the Babyindicate that in the early part of the second millennium letters the Amarna script was used there. And of course
language the Hittite tablets show that the language and script were the land in the latter half of the second millennium used throughout B. C, not only for Semitic tongues but non-Semitic as well.
and
us of conclude that many other considerations make from solution at the present time. involved are far the problems "We may ultimately find that the Semites had adopted their system of cuneiform writing before they settled in the valley ; or that they
These
and
for a period after they entered did not have a written language invaded and became masters of the the valley, until the Sumerians find that the Semites, bringing with them their land; or we may culture, invaded however, whom,
the land already occupied by the Sumerians, upon for their written language, dependent they were
The system of writing evolved. which contact their own being the parent script and perhaps for a time the only stand used by the Semitic Babylonians, it is not difficultto underin the early period how its use was more extensive very much
than the script which had evolved from it. "While these questions cannot be solved, the writer, in view of the increased light upon the situation covering investigations of a to the view that the Semitic and more series of years, inclines more lonian, elements that have been absorbed in the culture we regard as Babythan is usually recognized ; and, more numerous are much
moreover,
uals that although the names of temples, gods and individin a Sumerian garb, this is no proof that they are not appear
in his Busspsalmen
that the penitential admitted translations from the Semitic Babylonian
Semitic.
Zimmern
represent psalms may into Sumerian, and that there text was a whether Prince in his Materials for a
mining certain criteria for deterBabylonian or origin. of Sumerian Sumerian Lexicon also takes the position
were no
that many
of the Sumerian
texts
are
really "translations
of
I.
INTRODUCTION.
23
Semitic priests into the formal religious SumeBriinnow, The late American scholar, Rudolph rian language." in letters published some (RA 18, 259 ff.), years ago by Halevy Semitic ideas by
the position that all the so-called bilingual texts revert to Babylonian originals. He inclined to the view that the Semites were the original inhabitants of the valley, and that the Sumerians, took
entering, largely adopted the civilization they found in the land. Semitic, He did not maintain that the origin of the civilization was due to the amalgamation but that it was a product of these two
on races,
in which
predominated,
and
eventually
by these writers, that much of the Sumeroliterature that has been handed down is Semitic and not in the light of all that is seems perfectly reasonable
as
the religious texts the knowledge that it reasonthe writing was able confined to the scribe or priest, makes intended to invoke the to infer that the formulae which were
Even
regards
deities or charm
or less the spirits would be couched in a form more The religious and unintelligible to the pious Semitic applicant. intellectual leaders were in this way able to awe their clients and keep them dependent by using a language them that was upon
is also of the opinion that the Semites occupied the land prior to the entrance of the Sumerians, who, he holds, settled in southern Babylonia, drove the Semites northward, and He bases his argument the fact on occupied their old cult centres. that the monuments show that the Sumerians represented their hair and long beards, while they themselves gods with abundant they represhaved their heads and faces ; also that the garments sent
wearing are different from those of the people. Since gods are usually depicted wearing the same as man, costume it must follow that the image of the gods, as regards their hair and
as
their gods
have been according to the pattern shown them by their Meyer thinks were To be conthe Semites. predecessors, whom sistent, Meyer have to admit that the primitive and unculwould tured Semite must have dressed well ; and that the Sumerian, who had the genius for art, was dependent upon him at least for these
dress, must
24
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
us marks of his civilization. This reminds of the well-dressed Atnorites, whom the Egyptian artist depicted in the tomb of BernHassan (seeChapter XIV).
first question as to whether the Semites or the Sumerians occupied the land of Babylonia, is here irrelevant. Suffice it to find both present in know that in the earliest history known, we
The
Sumer
as
well
as
in Akkad.
fitting to discuss briefly the keeping In this connection, it seems Semitic or distinct or differentiating between what is Akkadian to the criticism Babylonian and what is West Semitic. In answer
on of Bohl,2 who takes issue with the thesis presented in Amurru that it does not keep separate these elements, which the ground themselves, as difference the Babylonians early as the time of
Hammurabi,
what The
necessary
to rehearse
of the
Northern
ites. Sem-
of the Semites who as the northern branch of the Semitic family, is in are regarded the lands west of Babylonia ; that the people from this region ians valley, and in time were called Akkadmigrated to the Euphrates
;
that
invaders, what
periodically, after the civilization of the earliest into influenced by the Sumerians, had been developed
invasions or is peculiarly known Akkadian, there were as that brought additional migrations during the succeeding millenniums dealing are people from the same region into the valley. We with millennia.
a
The
century
or
two, would
civilization under these conditions, after from what it was be sufficiently removed
came
The
pronounced
in centres
where
know,
Sumerian
influences
were
school of scribes which different appellations of the same sunother schools. The deity of the Semites can only be accounted for in this way. hundreds of names show that as a of deities written in Sumerian and from
The
each had
we
represented
rule it was
-
customary
und
to write them
p. 39.
Kanaanaer
Hebraer,
I.
INTRODUCTION.
25
selected were often descriptive of the god's attributes; dEn-amas, for example, dEn-lil, "Lord as "Lord of the storm"; dEn-Din-tirki, of the fold"; or, as indicative of the god's origin, It can "Lord scarcely be thought possible that all of Babylon." in common in Sumerian were the gods' names usage pronounced
as
ideograms
written,
for
example
dNin-a-dam-azag-ga,
etc.
dNiii^igi-si-bar-ra,
dUmtin-bad-urudu-nagar-ki,
written intended to however, even though originally not names of deities, dNe-Uru-gal, perhaps for example, be pronounced "light as such, formation, dEn-lil dAmar-Utug, a syncretistic of the great Uru,"
"lord
Other
ideographically
of the storm,"
or
dNin-gal Nergal,
name or
"great
lady,"
etc., in time
were
called
been Adad,
Shara, Ura,
Ellil, and Nikkal respectively. have of the deity En-lil, however, may In some other name of the storm-deity.
Marduk,
other words, the ideogram into use, and came and deity.
itselfin
even
some
instances
was
displaced
the original
name
pronounced of the
It is understood that dNin-Gir-Su, Lady of Girsu, at Telloh, was The name a deity similar if not identical with dNin-IB at Nippur. know Inurta or Inmashtu in was of the latter we now pronounced It would not be surprising the late period (see Chapter XVII). to learn that dNin-Gir-Su originally was simply another ideogram Urta or Inurta. Doubtless, the name used at Telloh for the same
ideogram At
dNin-Marki
the
name
perhaps without any exception written in that city with the sign Lagab with igi-gunu, inserted, and yet there are reasons for holding the view that Shara
was a
Umma
were was
originally the
same.
very
common
name
14). While
of Babylonian
deities appear
few whose actual pronunciation know have reason for we now we believing that the origin of a very large number ically of the ideographin Sumerian Semitic. was written names As
an
Babylonia
entering 'Awur=
to
'Uru). In
above,
not
thousand
years,
only could
the
name
under have
circumstances
referred
26
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
well
as so
during the of the deity as well. Even in Amurru, under different influence, the conception of the deity have suffered modithe pronunciation may of its name fication,
be quite and the
a
peoples
we
gap
between
newcomers.
lonia originally entered Babyas having modified under other Different names for their influences their religious conceptions. arisen in the different centres storm-deity had in the meanwhile more or less distinct said, were occupied by Semites, which, as was
must look upon from the wide
had
each other and under different influences. In other words, in a thousand years, under influences of this kind, a culture would had previously been have developed what quite distinct from brought into the land. With these conditions in mind, it is quite from
that the priests and the guild of scribes would look understandable a as foreigners, and as possessing upon the fresh influx of Amorites The same true with referwas ence cult quite distinct from their own.
was
for example,
the
name
Ishme-Dagan
Amurru, Dagan.
name
in Jashma'-Dagan pronounced and was Ishmebut it had long been Babylonized and pronounced bearing the When, however, fresh invasions brought men
into the country was the difference in the pronunciation In other words, noted, for the scribes wrote Ja-as-ma-'-dDa-gan. less Babyin a generation or so the foreign Semites were more or Ionized,
there
were
or
or
were
no
absorbed completely by the Akkadians fresh influx,foreign names either gave way
of the Cassite dynasty, Semitic Larsa, Nisin, and Babylon dynasties, when Amorite names In the Cassite period, owing to the inactivity of the abounded. The Amorites, West Semitic names very generally disappeared.
ceased to show any distinction in the by a study of the names which followed that of the West
doubtless given up for that of cult of the individual family was the land, with which it had much in common. The distinction, therefore, as to what is West Semitic and what is Akkadian, was (in spite of the asserclearly made in Amurru tion of Bohl, mentioned this discussion.
above),and
is kept
in mind
throughout
H.
THE There
are were
HOME
who hold
OF
THE
SEMITES
that the Semites and the Africa,
those
the view
race, and lived in Northern originally one into Arabia, and from there were whence the Semites passed over The view, however, that Arabia was dispersed. the original home
Hamites
regarded Arabs that have deposited themselves simply as successive migrations of layer upon layer in those lands. The migrations, due to have recurred periodically. We told that are over-population, Arabia breeds vast numbers tribes, but it can not of its nomad Arabia up support them ; that a thousand years was required to fill to the point when it could no longer sustain its inhabitants, and in
consequence
The
are
Semites
They
they migrated to tions adjacentlands. With slight variathis 'stock' theory has been used by a succession of writers. tell us that the first migration of which we have knowledge
the
brought
Semites
into Babylonia.
The
represented by the Semitic outbursts on 2000 B. C, and accounts also for the Semitic invasion of Babylonia the rulers of the First Dynasty when controlled the of Babylon
land ; this theory, however, has recently been modified. The third as the "Aramaean migraperiodical disgorging of Arabia is known tion," hold that this "spat Some land again the when out." migration B. C, the middle of the second millennium This and others that they firstmoved out in the thirteenth century. into Syria and Mesopotamia, migration took the Aramaeans and began
near
next somen," called "spilling over" of hungry tribesperiod, or "sporadic wave from the fifthcentury, when the Nabataeans was moved upon Petra. And Asia and Islam invaded Western the last is when
their kindred
into Palestine.
The
In nearly every work that is examined the on of Europe. history of Semitic peoples, some form of these statements, making Arabia the cradle of the Semites, or making all Semitic peoples from Arabia, is found. come
parts
(27)
_'s
THE
EMPIKE
OP
THE
AMORITES.
One
the
of the earliest writers to have maintained the of the Semites was primitive home who
in his Das
that Arabia
was
German
scholar
(1861, und in later works, maintained that agriculturists do not ff.), and Sayce, as early become nomads, and that all Semites are Arabs.
Sprenger
241
Leben
Lehre
des Mohammed
1872, declared that the Semitic traditions all point to Arabia as the original home of the race ; it is the only part of the world which has remained exclusively Semitic. The racial characteristics
as
"
best be intensity of faith, ferocity, exclusiveness, imagination can explained by a desert origin. Schrader, De Goeje, Wright, and Meyer, were other writers who held similar views.1
"
to have been originated by theory seems periodical wave Winckler who in his Gescliichte Babyloniens und Assyrians says: ' ' Arabia, due to geographical considThe home of the Semites was erations
The
at present and to the fact that the purest Semites are due to over-population The migrations found in that land. are "we have definite knowledge of and recur periodically. He said,
These are in reverse northward." began in the seventh century A. D., order : and culminated in the conquest of Islam ; 2. the Aramaic, from the fifteenth to the thirteenth century B. C. ; 3. the Amorite, a thousand four main
4. another, a thousand years was settled by the Semites. This thousand year disgorging theory has been adopted by many it "Thus English words: and American writers. In Paton's
B. C,
and
Arabia up that it took a thousand years each time to fill appears to the point when it could no longer hold its inhabitants but must lands. ' ' In addition to the four disgorge them upon the
adjacent
migrations Nabataean,
Barton
assumed
by Winckler,
Paton
adds
the Arabian
than previously had been done. elaborate manner Even though one does not agree with the position taken by Barton, treatment he cannot help admiring his full and thorough of the
theory in
subject. Not
1
Arabia
Barton.
as
the cradle-land of
For
Early
the
see subject,
Semitic Origins.
of Syria,
p. 7, 211, etc.
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
29
Africa
races,
the migration of their of the Semites into Arabia, some Hamitic brethren, who until then had been nomads, displaced the Negroids in the valley of the Nile, learned agriculture, and formed for Arabia being the His arguments of the Egyptians.3 in Arabia and in home of the Semites, follow : 1. Semites are now Syria, Abyssinia, lands, Babylonia, etc., lands more contiguous the
race
in which 2. During
agriculture has been practised from the historic period, wave after wave
of Arabs has been pouring from Arabia into the surrounding lands ; it is probable that the migration has always been that way, and not law of social progress 3. It may be regarded as a vice versa.
pass from agriculturists; but not
that nomads
change have
from
sterile to a fertile country, and become from a fertile to a sterile country, and It is inconceivable, if Semto nomads. ites agriculturists
a
originated
in
land
more
migrated thither. has been protected by deserts, has preserved the characteristics of fully than any other Semitic more primitive Semitic speech much
tongue. 5. The
fertile than Arabia, that they should 4. The Arabic language, where the race
Arabs,
better than
In his review of these successive waves, Luckenbill also adopted He said the first wave from the desert of Arabia to the theory. the north took the Babylonians of the Dynasty of Sargon about
2500
founders
the valley, and they were perhaps brought the First or Hammurabi next wave and the Canaanites into Canaan. into Syria and Mesopotamia, and Amorites,
The
next
their kindred
Moabites
and
Edom-
1500 B. C.4
linguistic evidence by Barton in
This
JAOS
i
is supported
with
1910, p. 22 ; and AJSL 28 p. 154. It is only fair to Luckenbill to state that in an article which recently 1918, (AJT appeared Dynasty is West Semitic. p. 30),he accepts the view that the Hammurabi
Biblical World
30
THE
EMPIRE
OP
THE
AMORITES.
Macalister views
as
has accepted these 'stock' is another writer who breed vast facts. He says: "for though Arabia may
them;
tribes it cannot support numbers of its nomad be diminished the struggle for existence may inhabitants, by
means
and
though
artificiallyby the of intertribal battles and, in ancient times, time comes periodically when necessity forces
to
as
overrun
the
more
as Amorite, regarding the origin of the First Dynasty King nevertheless looks upon Arabia as the cradle of the Semites. ern The first settled NorthHe traces four great Semitic migrations.
Babylonia;
took
the B. C. The third was place in the fourteenth century, which established its kingdom Aramaean in Syria with its capital at Damascus ; and the fourth took place in the seventh century of our era (MB p. 125).
the Canaanite
or
Amorite,
It would
who
serve
no
purpose
share these views. most scholars have accepted these periodical from Arabia as historical facts.
to multiply quotations from writers Sufficeit to repeat what is said above, that
waves
of emigration
to decide
to discuss
or
attempt
contending scientists concerning the ultimate origin and its separation from the of the Semitic race, gradual formation the millenniums required to develop race, so-called Hamito-Semitic the striking racial difference, the conditions under which Semitic inquiries characteristics developed, and all other anthropological the origin of Semitic society. The writer has waded concerning
through
masses
based
must
own
almost largely
conclusion alone upon historical or archaeological data and traditions ; which leaves untouched the ultimate origin of this race. of course One-half of the country is Arabia is a land of great contrasts.
of sandy deserts, with wide areas of shifting sand, where composed In is difficultto obtain, and famine is always imminent. water
his
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
31
it is only after the spring rains that the soil It should be subsistence for the Bedouin. that there is a river system which includes the
but the rivers never reach the sea. dry. In such sterile places, no permanent
for.
are
These
ments settlesmall
be looked
there
Elsewhere,
there
are
great
and
oases.
Then
and pastures. the coast of the Eed Sea, the Gulf, and in Southern Arabia, the land
fertile highlands
is naturally of frankincense, myrrh, coffee, spices, and perfumes, there is true The same all that is required for a great civilization.
districts of Arabia. also of the mountainous the climate of Arabia The question arises in this connection, was Hommel, a to-day? in ancient times the same as who has made careful study of the work of the explorers of Arabia, says : "It is
more that in ancient times there was water much safe to assume that great Huntington Ellsworth than at present."5 maintains in the climate of Central Asia have taken place during changes
historic times.
great tracts of territory which time were at one populated are at the present desert, or mitigated desert, which supports vegetation only part of the year. He tells us
He
has shown
how
and Northern Arabia, from three to five hundred miles almost identical with south of Lake Gyoljuk,present phenomena ton Mr. F. A. Norris, a member those of Central Asia. of the Princethat "Syria
to that region in 1904-5, states that a large number quate of ruins lie in the desert in a location where to-day there is no adeit would be impossible to secure water supply, and where
Expedition
sufficientwater ruined
with
cities were is now appears formerly to have supported oases date from the beginning of the Christian Era. ' ' 367
the the system when of irrigation employed in their prime. Elsewhere the water which saline. The (The Pulse
of
ruins Asia
change of climate, Huntington claims, has been observed to have taken place also in the Sinaitic Peninsula, and in Egypt. even
f.) This
in ancient times
694 ff.
was
less sterile
"Arabia,"
in Explorations
in Bible Lands
32
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
than at present, and the wadies, which parts of the land, contained water of the year, one can readily understand would
are
tain clearly defined in cerfor at least the greater part how tribes with great flocks
so
from the north. even pass into this country to take into consideration the fact that great
at present
when
move
of the year occupy these sterile districts in the seasons rains, for the time being, restore fertility; after which they to other parts where subsistence is possible. history has made there
us
As
acquainted
permanent
with
habitations of cities or peoples engaged in agricultural pursuits, the question as to whether belongs to the the nomad preceded the agriculturist, or vice versa, Moreover, history and tradition make us sphere of anthropology.
earliest period
were
tribes in the nation, including nomadic northern regions of the Semitic world in the earliest period known ; to the point, movements ward of the people eastand what is stillmore into into Babylonia, tribes southward and of the nomadic acquainted with
a
great
Arabia.
The
language
preserves
more
of primitive Semitic speech, it seems has to others, is evidence only of the fact that Arabia by Semites prior to the time when the Semitic languages
we are
settled
with which decay, or rather such modifications suffered as usiially follow the development of civilization. The language of Arabia, even at the present time, three thousand years later than
familiar had
the period to which the earliest South Arabian inscriptions belong, be said to have retained many can tive of the characteristics of primihad lost Semitic speech which the other Semitic languages
of life in Arabia are responsible but also customs not only of language and In the great centres fact is so well understood.
The conditions
or
language
seen
in parts of England The most primitive French ent spoken at the prestime is not heard in Paris, but in isolated districts,which have It seems to the writer that the linthe least development.
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
33
frequently used in support so of the theory of guistic argument, the Arabian origin, needs no refutation. In connection with the argument that exclusiveness, intensity of faith, imagination and ferocity are all racial characteristics of the
Semites, and that Arabs have better preserved them, it need only be said, if this is correct, that the climate and other existing conditions for the pronounced these pecuare character of liarities responsible
of the Arabs. The argument based upon the so-called waves of migration is the one which is so cogently pressed by the advocates of the theory, and is fortunately the one we can fully test by history and tradition. it is necessary to ascertain, as the first step to be taken, take cognizance can what characteristic features of civilization we of that are peculiar to the Arabian. To do
so,
Owing
cursory
to the conditions
explorations
have
than prevailing in Arabia, little more been possible, and these have often been
,; Nevertheless, during conducted under most trying circumstances. the past century there has been a rich gathering of inscriptions, dating, as some scholars hold, from about 1000 B. C, while others even an maintain earlier date. A great antiquity, however, for
Arabian
Perhaps
Chronicle which record the successful expedition of Naram-Sin against the land of Magan, and the taking of its king captive, whose Mannu-dannu. name was
omen
(King Chron.
which
II 51
f.) Magan
is regarded
as a
by
some
as
being in
; but by others
part
region is more accessibly to Babylonia. having transported heavy blocks of diorite from mentions
(F#Ip.
The
66,
etc.).
inscriptions, above referred to, came from four Hadhramotians, Qatabanians and the chief nations, the Minaeans, Sabaea-Himyarites. It is by the help of these inscriptions that For considerable knowledge of ancient Arabia has been gained. the present discussion of the Arabian theory let us note some of in these inscriptions, as well names the of the chief gods contained
6
Arabian
See Homniel,
"Arabia,"
in Explorations
in Bible Lands.
31
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
in order to test the claim the composition of the personal names, had that the civilization of the Amorites, Hebrews and Babylonians its origin in Arabia.
as
chief deity in these inscriptions is the god 'Athtar, who is the personification of both the morning and evening stars. It is generally thought that the god 'Athtar and the goddess Ashirta or deity. Some hold that Athtar Ishtar were originally the same
The
was
The second deity in the earlier form, but see Chapter XVII. is the moon-god, importance who has a different appellation among The Minaeans mentioned. called him each of the four peoples called him from the Western Semites) among the ; by the Sabaeans, Ilmaqqah 'Amru; and
Wadd;
the Hadhramotians
Sin
or
Almaqu-hu.
The
Arabian
or
H61
as
pantheon by the
(regarded the
same
Nabu) by
the
Qatabanians. Sun
local
deities,
tutelary names, are always goddesses, usually with who deities of cities such as Ta'lab of Riyam, the god Sami', Nasr, in Shibam t (doubtless,o be identified with the Qainan,Ramman Hagir, Ramman Rimmon or of the Babylonians), of Damascus,
Dhu-Samwa,
some
Dhaw,
Motab-Natiyan,
Niswar,
II Fakhr,
Zur,
are
in the inscriptions.7 In deities mentioned of the prominent short, these South Arabian inscriptions offer considerable material
on
from our knowledge the deities of the land. And manency of the perthe land it is safe to conthe manners of and customs of jecture in the periods preceding that of these inscriptions the that
in a general way practically the same. religion very likely was The study of the personal names as an adjunct of the religious ideas expressed in the inscriptions furnishes also valuable criteria, since they indicate what deities the people worshipped. It is scarcely possible that any one would regard the moon-god Sin as of Arabian origin because the inscriptions show that he was worshipped
by the Hadhramotians,
connected
7
is probably and because his name called Sinai and with the desert
in Bible Lands,
Names," ff.,and 1917. 99-112,
733
See Hommel
in Explorations
Proper
PSBA,
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
35
And it is scarcely possible that any one called "Wilderness of Sin. because of the name Arabian as of the god would regard Nabu by the Qatabanians, Anbay. worshipped who is considered by some in two inscriptions, name occurs Hadad, whose to be the same. In than an importation. otherwise would scarcely be regarded that these three gods are West short, there can be no question but
of peoples have taken place, large groups there will be unmistakable evidence of them in case have been preserved ; and that in the absence of of personal names invasions, definite historical statements conquests, concerning than that secured from bondages, etc., no better evidence is known
Having before us the elements of study of the personal names. be the ancient Arabic civilization that we should expect would has been claimed, as carried with the people if they migrated, as
a
Hittites, Cassites, etc.,we inquire to what extent to the have those which are peculiarly Arabic been transported of migration. other lands, in these so-called five periodical waves The burden of the proof, naturally, that such evidence exists, and did the Amorites, actually took place, lies with those who hold these there are any grounds views ; nevertheless, let us inquire whether can rest. upon which these hypotheses that these
waves
inscriptions and other In searching for evidence in the Babylonian first note legends bearing on the early history of that land, we that the legendary
down list of ante-diluvian by Berossus, shows that the names
VIII). The
shall see, show the same. early dynastic lists, as we tions, In the votive inscriptions, the religious texts, the building inscriplook in vain for tablets, etc., we on the seal impressions
On the other hand, anything that is characteristically Arabian. the influence from Amurru, whose civilization is as old if not older
Syncellus gives two dynasties after the flood, the first he designates as Chaldean, and the second Arabian ; the names of the latter are : MapSoKevn;s, It MapSaxos, 5u7i/uop8aKOS, NajStos, rTapanos, Xa/Jot-n-a/Jos. is thought by some
8
of filling out the gap between serving the purpose tainly IV 87. CerSee Poebel UMBS the firstking of Assyria.
they cannot
be proved
to be Arabian.
36
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
than Babylonia,
is much
In turning
followed of a deity. Hommel,9 which are used instead of the name by Pilter,10Paton,11 and others, regard these elements as of South for regardArabian origin. The writer sees no reason whatever ing Semitic. Moreover, them than as common while otherwise is a very common element in Babylonian Name Syllabary published by Chiera over Aim
names, one
in fact in the
hundred
different
a
score
as
far
compounded with it,and it is found in the Old Testament, as of different West Semitic names is known to the writer, it has thus far only been found once
names are
Some
'paternal generally met
have
been
as
or
Hammu,
uncle,'
this
seems
to have
been
given up, which is due to the fact that it is so frequently with in the West Semitic inscriptions, especially in the early
period (seeChapter XI). The only attempt known to the writer at identifying an unmistakable Arabian deity as an element in names found in Babylonia is in the case of ivedum in Ahi-ivedum. ing Pilter, apparently, followRanke
is Wadd."
quote
show
ivedum
or
edu
Sa/mas-wedwm-
usur,
Tabba-ivedi, Tabba-edi, etc. (seeChiera UMBS 11, 158). In short, after searching for elements that can be said to be charac9
10
Ancient
Hebrew
Traditions.
.
PSBA
1916, 153 f
11
p. 294.
Paton
also regards
as
sumu,
"name,"
and
characteristic marks
of
Pilter, who regards the names of the Old Testament compounded Ahu in the South Arabian inscrip"Akhi tions as Arabian us says: meets with but rarely; there is Akhukarib" 38 p. 156. PSBA
Even
H.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
37
teristic of Arabian
at but that they
are
civilization,no
other conclusion
can
be arrived
wanting. In this connection it is proper to inquire what Hebrew tradition has to say on the subject. The Hebrews looked upon Mesopotamia,
the Tigris and the Euphrates, as the cradle tory hisThey also made the second beginning of man's of mankind. in which country the ark rested. from Armenia, to emanate Aryan It is an interesting coincidence that many scholars look
or
as
the probable
home
of the Sanskrit
group
of
writers of the table of nations in the tenth and eleventh chapters of Genesis, in giving a history of the family which became the nation Israel, felt the necessity of accounting for the divisions The after the flood, and of showing how the peoples were related. The sons of Aram, the descendant of Shem, are : Uz, Hul, Hul and Gether have not been identified as yet, Gether, and Mash. of mankind but Uz
is understood
to represent
in Arabia, not far east from Edom in which was the important city Ki-Mashki, or of Mashu, Damascus (seeChapter XII). If Uz has been correctly identified in Xorth Arabia, we have here at least a distinct effort on the part
of the Biblical writer to account for the Arabians. Another begat Eber, whose descendant of Shem, Arpachshad, Peleg and Joktan. Thirteen sons sons were tioned, of Joktan are menIn Arabia. to represent are who understood peoples of other words, we have here another effort by the Biblical writers to Their view is that account for the origin of the Arabian nations. from the north. they emanated
The Terah,
name
descendants
of Peleg
are
or
and
a
Abram.
Sarug,
district in the land of Aram; of and Nahiri, or Nahor, is close by Serug (see Chapter XI). Here the writer places the home of the Hebrews, following the former current view. It is needless to refer to the fact that modern criticism does not the tenth chapter of Genesis or any other similar effort in regard the Old Testament having any historical value as regards the as No one would question that the separation of origin of the races. the peoples referred to took place at a time very far removed from
38
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
But it must be conceded, the historical period. as writer or writers looked upon the Aramaeans
that of a great antiquity ; and that the view of these writers was Arabia was What traditions populated by people from the north. based, we, of course, they possessed, upon which their views were It would seem, however, that their opportunity are unable to say.
for knowing
that Abram
enjoyed
and
maeans, about the early history of the Arathat is,their own at least greater than ancient history, was by those modern scholars who begin the history of
at least something
from with the exodus of the Aramaeans Egypt, in the latter half of the second millennium Arabia, or even from this point of view, which are B. C. The theories advanced do not ingenious manner, developed in a wonderfully of course,
the Hebrews
of truth in these legends concerning the modicum in spite Such views are maintained in Aram. patriarchal home and philology have restored of the fact that history, archaeology, for a Semitic civilization in this region with for us the background recognize
even
a
earlier than the period of the conquest; antiquity very much tiate and in spite of the fact that nothing has been revealed to substanto believe that when their theories. There is every reason
an
the time arrives for the ruin-hills of this district to be opened up, we shall become acquainted not only with a civilizationas ancient, if not more so, than any known at present, but also much evidence
to show
down
by the Hebrew
there
are
writers of the
second wave of Arabs which is supposed to have brought the Semitic population to Palestine, in the second half of the third at the time of the millennium, and a great influx into Babylonia received more attention largely because of the excavations in Palestine and the great mass of belonging to this period. inscriptions found in Babylonia The theory that the rulers of the First Dynasty of Babylon were First Dynasty of Babylon,
were wont to adopt, originated origin, which for a time many A XI, 543), the French scholar, Pognon (J with who merely 1888, that the dynasty might be either of suggested, as early as
has
of Arabian
Arabic
to
or
years
the
tenth
n.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
39
occurring in the South Arabic inscriptions; and he seemed to think that some of of the names of the First Dynasty Homruel, to whom Babylon were Arabian. the elaboration of the Arabian; were theory is due, later tried to show that all the names
Dynasty,
as
but he admitted at the time that he thought "both Hammurabi and Canaanitish have assumed names his successors either for must with a view to conciliating their Canaanite subpolitical reasons jects,
or
possibly
because
they had
married Canaanite wives and tion, their love for them." (Hebrew Tradi-
names
are
Babylonian,
that eigbt of the maintained Canaanite, while two, Apil-Sin and Sin-muballit, leaving Zabium (Geschichte Israels uncertain that the First Dynasty
to prevail, and
130
or
ff.). The
Amorites,
view
now
seems
were were
Canaanites
of Arabian
to have been given up. origin seems occurHommel that many ring of the foreign names also maintained Arabian inscriptions of this period were in Babylonian also Names the Hammurabi 110 ff.). Ranke, in his Personal (Ibid.
of
fully discussed the question of the Arabian origin of the One can not help admiring Ranke in attempting foreign names.13
Dynasty,
13
The
hypochoristic
because by
atu
attached examples
to
names,
is regarded
most
of him
numerous
as a
well
as
to
feminine
Safaitic inscriptions
But This
of their Arabic origin. characteristic mark is attached are Babylonian. to which this ending in the
Cassite period,
Moreover,
felt in Babylonia.
an
when the
little foreign
names
Semitic
Safaitic
of the
inscriptions, having
to the
or
belong compared, afiixed t. with which they were Christian era, from the second to the four century, with and a half of other names, which are compared
must
these Safaitic
many
which dozen
in the
same
light. Semitic
And
besides,
Northwest
the
inscriptions;
be taken
which Tinkarum,
and Four Jinkar, said to be an compared with Jadah-ilu, and Jadah-halum, are others, Aii-esuh, Ammi-zaduga, compared but these are also well known Arabic names, North Semitic elements. with
are
with those taken seriously in this connection. he compared with South Arabic
of about a (of the ninth century A. D.) leaves eight of Banke 's list
comparison
two
40
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
to defend
on
of the whole contention vanishes Not only are the rulers of the First Dynasty considered Amorite, dynasties but also, as will be shown later, the contemporaneous
Erech (seeChapter VIII), of Larsa and Nisin, and perhaps also of is And Semitic foreigners also sat on these thrones. for West there any evidence of Arabic influence in the literature of this era?
As
far
as
is known
to the writer
no
observed. What is true of Babylonia is also true, as shown above, of Assyria bear West Semitic names about this time, for the early rulers also (see Amurru, p. 140). It is interesting to note here that King "We this point, in the words: on may recently commented that Assyria received her Semitic population at about this assume {HB migration." offshoot of the Amorite period as another
has 136
f.)
up
to the present
Unfortunately
Northwest
time
no
inscriptions from
the
Semitic
peoples
evidence to be gathered from the CapArabic migration in the inscriptions for the supposed padocian is in the negative. The answer latter part of the third millennium. Instead of Arabic, we find Amorite or West Semitic elements much in evidence in their personal names, such as Amur, Anu, etc. Ashur, Ashirta, Shamash, the gods Ashir or (see Chapter XII).
lodytes It has been asserted that the Semites who dispossessed the trogThis is an assumpArabs. tion at Gezer, in this period, were flourished in the Lebanon The Amorites pure and simple.
This
leaves Baibum,
Zamzum,
compared
no
44: 16 LE.
Hebrew which
(BE
VI,
.
2), Jasmah-el
l?N"OCM is also an The former, and find in Pilter's index of names, latter the writer cannot It should be noted that Ranke also suggests a comparison
sumu
and however,
compared Amorite
with
name,
*?Ni*2D*
and the 39, 99 ff.
PSBA
Arabic
HOD;
zimri with
"l,2"j ; and
Jftl*.
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
4-1
Canaan prior to this era, and geographically region millenniums over, in this period (seelater Chapters). Morewas a part of Amurru the Semites, whose existence in Palestine has been noted This seems through the excavations, are very probably Amorites.
take into account, as noted above, that highly probable when we dynasties had been established about this time three different Amorite had possession of Assyria; that Amorites in Babylonia;
were responsible for the and that it is not impossible that Amorites history which also synchronizes with this dark period in Egyptian moveSince we have no evidence whatever of an Arabian ment period.
that the perfectly reasonable to assume Semites, who dispossessed the cave-dwellers at Gezer and perhaps the dwellers on other hills of Palestine at this time, were of the same stock, namely, Amorite.
at this time, it seems
in the fourteenth chapter of the eight names examination of Genesis, Pilter concludes that four are probably Amorite: form of the Arabic bari'a; that Birsha' that Bera' is an Amorite
After
an
is from
ymous quadriliteral root in Arabic ; that Shinab, which is synonthat 'Aner, Sin-abu, is Arabian; the Babylonian and with likely Am-ner, is also Arabian was (PSBA 36, 212 ff.). very
a
'
should prove correct, for which conjecture in justificationany of the different forms of this name
the latter
can
can corruption of Sin-abu, the name Further, no such personal names only be said to be Babylonian. inscriptions. Bera' and Birsha' occur in the South Arabian as
only be regarded
a
as
common
Semitic
above).
is
The writer thinks that it will be generally to show Arabian influence by these names
The
name
Abram,
or
conceded that the effort is not very successful. in the fuller orthography, Abraham, which
for years has been regarded by certain scholars as Arabic, is not found in the Arabian inscriptions. On the other hand, both elements have been found in the West Semitic and in the the name of Babylonian
name
inscriptions.
About
decade
ago
Ungnad
found
,
the but
Abram
(A-ba-ra-ma,A-ba-am-ra-am,
a
A-ba-am-ra-ma)
p.
nian Babylowas
(EBL
5), which
written in the
era
of the patriarch.
42
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
the Biblical tradition might be mentioned also properly by the descendants of Ishmael, the son of Abraham concerning in accounting for the Bedouin, who with a primitive and Hagar, over the deserts lying between of life roamed patriarchal mode
Here
was
thou goest towards Assyria" (Gen. 25; 13-18). Here also the tradition concerning the six sons the of Keturah, representing Arab tribes south and east second wife of Abraham, These can only be regarded as of Palestine, might be mentioned.
that traditions which indicate that the Hebrew writer understood The Midianfrom the north had settled Arabia. the Aramaeans ites also are regarded as the half brothers of Isaac and Ishmael.
third periodical "disgorging" period, according to Winckler, Paton, Luckenbill, and others, is the so-called Aramaean, which began about 1500 B. C, and lasted for several centuries. Before
The
is found on trace of the Aramaeans monuments sign of them in the Egyptian for Damascus in
a
Darmeseq
No
list of Ramses
III
credence, as noted above, is placed in the Biblical tradition concerning the ancestral home of the patriarchs theory in Aram. The conclusion follows that this is a mistaken
(1198-1167B. C).
that
was
them. by
regarded maean Arabia, and by others as Araout of who by who lived in the desert south of Canaan, known nomads About 1200 B. C, they invaded the collective name of 'Abraham.' They Palestine. had no higher culture of their and conquered
some
accepted
are
by
Arabs,
own,
but adopted
Jacob
that of the people they conquered. clans, not individuals. While there are 'Abraham'
people united with a and entered Canaan as early as 2000 B. C, the 'Isaac' and 'Rebekah' tribes were later waves which migration of Aramaean The third wave was the Abraham absorbed and Sarah people.
Isaac
'Jacob,' and
"cow,"
the fourth
was
'Israel.'
Leah,
which
name
means
for "sheep," are collective names merely and Rachel, the 'cowboys' of tribes that and 'shepherds,' two main groups Since the from the south and east respectively. entered Canaan
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
4:3
Musri in North Arabia, named it is claimed by some 'Egypt,' that Misraim, was confused with it, and that this is the place, i. e., Musri in Arabia, whence the Others hold, in view of the fact that there was Hebrews migrated. discovery
that there
was
a
country
Goshen
in South
was a
is known
as
tribes from of some however, There are, Canaan.14 still believe that scholars who Israel, or at least a part of the people, lived in Egypt. The evidence for this so-called Aramaean migration from Arabia, far as which overflowed Syria and other countries at this time, as the writer can ascertain, is confined to the references to the people
Palestine called Habiri in the Amarna by the people we know other archaeological of Arabia
with them. If the Hebrews
seem
came
letters, and
as
to the conquest
the Hebrews.
There
may
or
historical evidences offered for the "disgorging" at this time, but the writer is unacquainted
out of Arabia
at this time, it certainly would
hints of such a movement that at least some in the mass of literature about this period which
down.
particle of evidence to substantiate the to the idea that this movement from Arabia; was and it seems to discuss extensively this question until writer wholly unnecessary The story of Israel in Egypt, which land such has been produced.
a
There
is not
obscure tribes, its sojourn in Goshen, received so many the building of store chambers with sun-dried bricks, the references to the Nile and to Egyptian life at court and in the home, the personal
we
know
of individuals, everything has the proper coloring and Not only is the is entirely true to what is known of the land. correct in the account of the people's residence there, atmosphere
names
but also the references to Egypt after they had departed and lived in the wilderness, to which frequently looks back. the narrator With the story of the in Egypt and in the wilderness in
sojourn
a single hint of any other possession, and in the absence of even origin for the Hebrews who entered Canaan, the proof of the assertions, forth as historical facts, rests with are so which often set
our
14
For
Paton,
JBL
on
Israel's conquest
of Canaan,
see
44
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOKITES,
those
present writer, until archaeological is forthcoming to show that the contrary or philological evidence is correct, is content to hold the view that the Hebrews, with the
who
make
them.
The
ing civilization they possessed, would not have accepted in the succeedthe humiliating origin of their an account of centuries such if it had not been fact. nation,
The writer genealogical Testament. and
upon
is cognizant of how modern criticism regards the lists in Chronicles as well as in other books of the Old Deuteronomy, Those in Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, with their hundreds of other details, may ; and yet if the Hebrews be looked
Joshua,
in the
bic are of Arageneral way trace of this fact that there would be some origin, it seems found in these lists,especially as the nomenclature cannot be said We peer in to be that of a period of the later or dual kingdom.
same
to be peculiarly of what we know vain for those characteristic marks It is quite reasonable to infer that the Hebrews Arabian. out of Egypt and who lived in the Sinaitic Peninsula for who came
time should have intermarried with the dwellers of that region ; ture and it would not be in the least surprising to find in the nomenclain their down that they handed such constituent elements names as would conclusively show such contact with the Arabs ;
a
have we so example, well illustrated in the Murashu had with Archives, found at Nippur, where the contact the Hebrews the Babylonians ent and Persians through intermarriages is so apparin the personal names. Even this has not been pointed out by
as,
for
to the writer. those who hold the Arabian theory, as far as is known from invasion' received its name If this so-called 'Aramaean Aramaeans, the fact that the Hebrews are who entered Canaan
the designation
them
are
as
of the Biblical tradition, for it regards If, however, it is understood that these Aramaeans
is that
reason came
the least, confusing. The identification of the Habiri with the Hebrews, taneously simulmade in 1890, soon tablets, the discovery of the Amarna after Zimmern, has been ever by both Conder since the subject and inclined discussion. Not few scholars have a of considerable
toward
of the crowded condition of Arabia, as forth from that land, the term is, to say is not in Arabia. Aram
this view in
one
form
or
another.
Some
claimed
that they
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
45
represent
main bands
resented entering Palestine ; others, that they repin advance that left Egypt a portion of the people of the body; that they represented roving stillothers maintained
the Hebrews
merly The present writer forfrom the wilderness. of Hebrews inclined to the view that the Habiri represented the Hebrews Joshua, because, besides other under entering "Western Canaan
reasons,
Habiri
The
of this event
synchronized
in cuneiform fact that 'Ibri could be properly reproduced to make the Habiri, together with other considerations, seemed as it However, certain other facts make reasonable. view appear
possible, the writer feels, to explain their identity in another in that the Habiri were way ; namely, mercenaries or subjects the Aramaeans; probably, however, service of the Hittites, perhaps have been a branch of the Hittite they may peoples.1''
now
-Mitannian
in 1907 held that the late date of the Exodus based upon inconclusive the excavations rests upon of Naville at ancient Pithom account of the excavations; and evident from his own grounds, as became
15
The
writer
of the character, The name the oppressor portrayed. the city called Eamses etc., of of Zoan in earlier times, very probably in the Old Testament, which was called known by this name was as the name the account was when written, the same land in which Joseph placed his father and brethren (Gen. 47: 11). of the respect This view that Eamses II was not the Pharaoh of oppression was by Ohr several years earlier. (See Light on the Old Testament
that Thutmose
III in every
anticipated
from Babel
Personal
2*67 ff.)
16
The
reasons
for this
conjectureare
p. 42
found
in the
writer's
are
Names
Not
a
f., which
in brief
were
the following:
the land from upon encroaching in the Boghaz-koi that tablets there is
had in
term
Hani
a
ha-ab-bi-ri "gods
habbatu meaning as far as is known to the writer, the text of the tablet or tablets has been published. has been found not (More recently the ideogram SA-GAS
on
a list of deities habbiri" of the written at the close of ideogram an SA-GAS, standing for habbiri, "plunderers," nately, Unfortushows the same.
to refer to officials records of the Larsa Dynasty, where it seems living in Babylonia.) The or occurrence workmen of several personal found in Babylonian names tablets of the Cassite period, which can be iden-
temple
4li
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOKITES.
In the Babylonian
Mitannian,
names,
tablets of the Cassite period, besides HittiteCassite names prevail. There are also a few Elamite
some
which foreign
besides small groups which represent other peoples, The occurrence cannot be determined. at present
names
of of the
of this period indicates either and of the Hittite-Mitannian extensive Cassite peoples, or historic events of considerable importance, Naturally, the fact of these peoples. accounting for the movement
in the nomenclature the part on migrations
that the rulers of this dynasty for the royal sites, accounts The presence names. of so
were names
many
foreigners whom we call Casother Cassite and the many is Hittite-Mitannian names
nant better understood when we take into account the fact that the domithe Hittite; and at this time was people in the Northwest that the Mitannian ; which people had taken possession of Aram is evident from There other sources. is a striking fact to be noted in this connection ; the Amorite names so of the previous period, namely prevalent in the nomenclature peared,17 that of the First Dynasty of Babylon, have very generally disapthe Amarna letters, and from
already Babylonia,
in the thousands
every other period, conspicuously to are absent at this time. Foreign Semitic peoples do not seem be in evidence in this era. And in particular, it should be added, the influence from Arabia in this period, as indicated by the nomenclature,
If, therefore, is nil, at least as far as has been observed. Arabia was sending forth at this time, as has been claimed, one of favored its periodic waves into the more tribesmen of hungry
In short, regions round about, they must have avoided Babylonia. the inscriptions of Babylonia ment evidence of a moveoffer no more from Arabia at this time than can be shown from any other
source.
namely
probability that this designation was it reasonable to look These facts make in some way with those peoples. from the desert, but as being peculiarly the Habiri not as Hebrews upon
the
perhaps identified
Aramaeans. related to the Hittites, if they are not 17 II, 2; and PN. UMBS See Clay, BE XIV, XV;
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
*l
tablets speak of another people employed the Sutu. the Habiri, namely, as manner or In one letter These are said to be nomads of the Syrian Desert. of Namiawaza they are mentioned with the Habiri as supporters appeals to be delivered (Xo. 195); and in another, Dagan-takala from the hand (Sa-Ga-as) "the robber people" of the Habiri ha-ba-ti),nd the Sutu (Xo. 318). Probably the Sutu (ameluti a Hittite. Semitic mercenaries, and the Habiri were were identification of the Habiri In connection with the proposed to the name of the city of with Hittites, attention might be called Abraham Hebron, where the children of Heth lived, and from whom ham's The name bought the cave of the city in Abraof Machpelah. Mamre, time was and it is also referred to as Kiryath-Arba. It is not impossible that the name Later it was called Hebron.
(=dn)
from
Moreover,
in the period of Hittite ascendancy. received its name fourth wave The so-called Xabataean or of migration need living in Edom a people The Xabataeans are detain us long.
the latter part Xa-bat-ai mar
not in
It is thought of the last pre-Christian millennium. in a letter of AshurbanipaPs time (Harper ABL 305),refers to an individual from this nation, whom Streck regards banipaPs to think mat Xa-ba-a-a-te in AshurOthers seem Aramaean. as an Annals and is of the Xabataeans, refers to the country perhaps 25 : 13.
Gen. of Ishmael. fied identiIt will be noticed that at least two of the few names with the country at this time, namely Ha-za-el, the father of TJ-a-a-te-',king of Arabia, and Bir-Da-ad-da,18 the father of
to be identified with
Nabaioth, the
son
U-a-a-te-',
Aramaean. The
are
Aramaean;
perhaps
the
name
TJ-a-a-te-'is also
inscriptions which belong of the Xabataean Arabic than to the first century B. C, it is claimed, contain more It is thought that the Xabataeans Hebrew names. and Aramaic
extant
names
land, east of that country, from the pressed upon Edom adjoining Petra their chief city. Even though it could be shown and made
18
AshurbanipaPs
Annals
VIII
2.
48
THE
EMPIRE
OP
THE
AMORITES.
that the
majoritywere
this fact would hardly sending one of its thousand of the Semites, was lands. the surrounding over waves
Arabs
periodic
No and and
ever
military power in the seventh the Near East, eighth centuries of the Christian era overran even parts of Europe, and established its civilization whereone
would
deny
that Islam
as
but this is not to be accounted for as being due to Arabia being overcrowded, but because of lust for loot and power. No one would attempt to deny that Semites from Arabia have it went; entered to range during certain Euwalla the year, like the 'Anezeh or seasons peoples at of did in Biblical times ; while others present, or as the Midianites tricts. attracted to the cities and to the agricultural disnaturally were
constantly
filteredinto Syria.
Many
carried into exile, the Edomites Petra, about 300 pressed into their lands in the south of Judah. The Decapolis was B. C, fell into the hands of the Nabataeans. After the Jews
had
been
created
as
Greek
league
to promote
and also for mutual In the first century of our era, the Beni Jafna migrated peoples. from Yemen, and some centuries later founded the Syrian dynasty
this part of the of the Ghassanides ; and later on, Islam overran All such movements this highly delightful and towards world. III, were land" by Thutruose fertile region, called "God's perfectly from all directions. But neverthePeoples came less natural. is not to be explained as in Amurru the origin of Semitic life We have knowledge of too many resulting from such incursions.
into the land, other movements etc., to be misled with such Every fact bearing upon the
as a
tine, Philis-
subject
in subsequent chapters, points to land of Amurru, as will be seen it as a home of the Semite, reaching back into prehistoric millenniums, indicates also mean a civilization of no character; and with radiated in all directions. Moreover, belongs to as of the Semitic race stated above, the ultimate home anthropology, and is a question which there is no desire to discuss. that from
this land Semites
In conclusion, the writer simply wishes to ask those who to why to maintain as this theory to satisfy themselves
II.
THE
HOME
OF
THE
SEMITES.
4:9
lands of Amurra tile and Akkad, with their attractive climates and ferlands, a veritable 'Garden of Eden,' where the oldest civilizations have knowledge to be found, should have we are of which
been
as
dependent
Arabia.
upon
such
breeding
point of view
examined,
it is found
COUNTRY
chief lands in which the Semitic peoples have lived are located in that great parallelogram
by the Taurus
Mountains,
Indian
The
potamia, Syria and Mesoas northern part of this territory, known is fertile,as well as stretches of lands along the coast on the lower part of the Red Sea, the Gulf of Aden and part of the tory Persian Gulf. A considerable portion of the balance of the terrioases
is barren, but yet it is dotted here and there by small and large of great fertility.
cally united politionly time this great stretch of territory was it. In other eras, Islam dominated was considerable when but the character of the districts had come under separate rulers,
The
districts separating land, with its great deserts, and mountainous one mation responsible for the lack of amalgapart from another, was for the breaking up of the or cohesion of the peoples, and territory into separate and distinct provinces. The northern part of this great Semitic world, at present called Syria and Mesopotamia (or El Jezireh),nd styled 'the fertile a peculiarly central position between Africa and To the northwest Asia, as it were, although strictly a part of Asia. the Hittites, to great nations beyond Asia Minor, a gateway was
crescent,'
lies in
"
To the north lay the other peoples. Scythians, and other nations whose influence and history is only The Assyrians, by name. at present not even slightly known, many
Greeks, Romans,
and
many
and other great peoples lay on the Arabs, a people of the same race, the east. In the south were ranean. and Ethiopians ; and on the west the Mediteralso the Egyptians Syria has often been likened to a bridge with the sea on Babylonians, Persians, Parthians, the
one
side and
the desert
on
Western
Asia
HI.
THE
COUNTRY
AMURBXJ.
51
By reason of its position, the land has been the scene and Africa. invasions and contending armies during the past millenniums of many Hittites, Amorites, Here the Egyptians, its history. of Arabs, Turks, Persians, Greeks, Romans, Assyrians, Babylonians, of the land; and other peoples have contested for the supremacy the last effort being that of the English and French against the be If the earlier history of the land can ever Turk and German. field other struggles of nations on this battlewritten, doubtless many will become known. Amurru, mountains, with its diversified features of snow-capped tablelands, fruitful plains, and tropical valleys, accommodated besides the agricultural and pastoral Semites who abode in houses
and
tents, various
races,
some
In this way, nature of this region, people of the mountains, valleys and cities,who led lives which had As a result, cave-dwellers lived in the hills of little in common. earth.
in
caves
of the
Palestine to
late date ; while doubtless the agriculturist comparatively the Bedouin had flourished in the valleys and plains and however, the caveGradually, for millenniums. them about by those who sought the hills on which to dweller was supplanted
a
towns,
and
in this way
to protect
coast, due to the natural and the citiesof the Lebanon especially attractive to sea-faring of the land, were products a that produced of races peoples, resulting in a great admixture contributions to the culture of the ancient peculiar type, whose
world
were
extensive.
Syria
with
its Orontes,
was
Euphrates,
and
of peoples other rivers, and great stretches of plains, back into a hoary antiquity. reaching The conditions from a geographical point of view throughout this favorable for an extended part of the Near East, are supremely
The occupation. and continuous climate, the soil, the natural highways in all directions, all suggest the offering communication in idea that it was a land that teemed with a great population
the home
Its rivers, lakes and seas, its mountains ancient times. tivated and its culhills,where the vine grows in terraces and the olive tree flourishes ; its rich plains and valleys, all make it a delightful and
52
THE
EMPIKE
OF
THE
AMOBITES.
highly desirable land in which to live, a veritable land "flowing As Cicero said in one of his orations, the with milk and honey." "is so rich and so productive that in the fertility of its country
ture soil,and in the variety of its fruits, and in the vastness of its paslands, and in the multitude of all things which are matters of exportation it is greatly superior to all other countries" {Manilian
Law
VI).
IV
EXCAVATIONS
Excavations have
not
IN
AMURRU
conducted as yet in the land of the from all the Amorites except in Palestine ; and it would appear, that this is the least important light that we have on the subject, of the Amorites. part of the great Empire
been
story of the excavations in Palestine has been related many times, yet it seems appropriate in this connection to mention briefly,
The
in
subject
At
the
Tell el-Hesy, which lies on the edge of the Philistine plain, the lowest stratum is thought by Petrie and Bliss, who excavated 1700 B. C, and the uppera period about at the site,to represent most
letters, about 400 B. C. The city is referred to in the Amarna taken by Joshua ; and, but not in the Egyptian inscriptions. It was
according
pottery
to
Chronicles,
was
fortified by
Rehoboam.
Besides
tablet and remains of walls, buildings, etc., a cuneiform written in the Babylonian language, and belonging to the fifteenth found in its ruins. century B. C, i. e., the Amarna period, was
the Egyptian on as one monuments city Gezer is mentioned III, about 1475 B. C. Three of of the cities taken by Thutmose letters were In the the Amarna Japahi. written by its governor, The
book of Joshua we are told that its king, and the men with him who to the help of Lachish, were In the excavacame slain by Joshua. tions Gezer, it is claimed that the two lowest strata are earlier at
than anything found at Tell el-Hesy, and belonged to the Neolithic Macalister, who conducted the excavations, holds that the age.
non-Semitic, of small stature; and that He thinks that the probable date of their troglodyte dwellings is prior to 2500 B. C. The third and fourth
were
strata which
lie immediately
to belong
in them
tained above are shown by the scarabs conto the period from the XII to the XTX
Dynasties,
quently about 2000 to 1400 B. C. The city is frereferred to in the Egyptian inscriptions, and was occupied
(53)
i. e., from
54
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOKITES.
The earliest inhabitants, the troglodytes, until the Christian era. Maealister holds, practised cremation, made pottery by hand, and it. The Semitic people, who displaced the at times ornamented old inhabitants, built a great megalithic high place, practised sacrifice the firstborn and foundation sacrifice; had many varieties of
strongly influenced by Egypt, but much Besides figurines, regarded as representing cuneiform tablets of the seventh century B. C. were
were
Judah
was
have shows that the place may of Sellin at Ta'anach been occupied from about 2000 B. C. up to the time of Josiah, when it was The two disdestroyed by the Egyptians coveries or the Scythians. The work
besides figurines, are at Ta'anach of significance made eight cuneiform tablets, and a crude pottery altar of incense. The tablets had probably been preserved in the pottery chest, beside It will be recalled that in the time found. of them were which some
(Jer. 32 : 14) important writings of Jeremiah jars. In not a few instances jarshave been
were
found containing tablets. The building in which the tablets were to whom have been the residence of one, Ashirta-washur, several may Guli-Addi offers to send silver the letters are addressed. of to Ashirta-washur; and among other things calls on him to give his daughter, old enough, to the king (namely of Egypt). he received; inquires whether Ahi-Jami weapons refers to some to send a messenger proposes certain cities had been recovered;
when
Aman-hashir
all prisoners these letters, tablets containing lists of men, and other fragments, make up the eight tablets discovered. It is understood
Besides
same
general period
as
the Amarna
if that is correct, the name Ahi-Jami, which is very probably equivalent to Ahijah, is most interesting, since it contains Israel's God, written Ja-mi. the divine name In the of Murashu found at Nippur, belonging to the reigns of archives Artaxerxes is names and Darius, the divine element in Hebrew written Ja-a-ma for Jawa.
IV.
EXCAVATIONS
IN
AMTJBBTJ.
about an which is part, of ancient Megiddo, hour northwest of Tell Ta' anach, Sellin devoted two years to excavating. III ; it figures with by Thutmose Megiddo was captured At Tell Mutesellim,
fortified by Solomon; Letters; was Ta' anach in the Amarna and lost his life. Besides the place where Ahaziah died, and Josiah was buildings, walls, pottery, bronze and stone objects, etc., that were The one was a jasperseal stone found. discovered, two seals were
bearing
a
Hebrew
inscription, "to
some
Shema,
to be
one
of Asaph. other seal bore the name At Sebastiyah, the ancient Samaria, the expedition of Harvard during parts of three seasons. University was able to excavate found built upon Here a large palace was native rock, which is
believed
later extensively This was to be the palace of Omri. This is believed enlarged, and the walls faced with white marble. "ivory to have been the work of Ahab, who is said to have built an
home"
about
(I Kgs.
one
22:
39).
In
building
were
on
hundred
The are ostraca writing known. earliest specimens for wine and oil which had been stored, containing the memoranda name names of place whence of the sender and receiver, amounts, it came, nately and the date. The year of the reign is given, but unfortuAn old city gate of the Israelite of the king. period, ruins of other buildings of later periods, and other remains
not the
name
were
potsherds of Hebrew
found
uncovered. More not far recently, Ain Shems, the Biblical Beth-Shemesh, from Der Aban on the railroad between Jaffa and Jerusalem, was in 1911 and 1912. The war brought to excavated by Mackenzie, being conducted at Balata, near close other excavations that were Nablus, the Biblical Shechem, and on the Ophel at Jerusalem. Besides these operations, other excavations of a private character
a
have
been conducted from time to time by scholars and travellers through which important results have been obtained. The results of these excavations that have a bearing on the present discussion belong naturally to the early period. Through them learn about the massive city walls, the plans of the houses, the kinds of weapons and utensils the people used; something about the stock they raised; about their religious their foods; and
we
56
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
beliefs and practices ; their methods of burial ; the state their art had reached; and about their intercourse with other nations. It inferences for an draw is by the help of these facts that we our
of the civilization in this part of Amurru. understanding It must be admitted, however, that if it were not for the light throw upon that contemporaneous records and the Old Testament the early period, these excavations would give us littleconception The excavations conducted of the civilization that existed in the land. important as they are in throwing in the hills of Palestine,
tact certain phases of the early life of the land, and its connations, nevertheless furnish us with with the surrounding itic littleunderstanding of the actual occupation of that region by SemThe a at Tell Mutesellim, excavations conducted peoples.
light upon
of Megiddo, for example, have not furnished materials from which it is possible to draw any adequate picture of the civilization of that city. It is only with the light that we obtain from such a list of booty taken after the fall of the fortress, as that given by
part
that district appreciate how The same is true of the tale of swarmed with life in ancient times. Sinuhe, which throws such a flood of light upon the civilization Palestine, about 2000 B. C. (seeChapter XIV). Should north of
Thutmose
III, that
we
begin
to
era or earlier, with light on Palestine of the same the fact that cave-dwellers we shall doubtless find, notwithstanding lived in the hills,and other foreign peoples were in evidence, that us
fortune
favor
the country
unto
in permanent agricultural settlements herds, and who had attained a people ; who possessed great fair civilization, exactly as the traditions of the Old a very teemed with Semites lead
any
Testament Without
the excavations, we cannot help expressing in not finding more written records of an early period, such as are found in Egypt and Babylonia. The earliest writings discovered,
besides the few cuneiform tablets, are the ostraca, above referred to; the so-called Calendar Inscription found at Gezer, probably the Moabite stone, the Siloam going back to the ninth century;
inscription, and
few minor
inscribed
follow in point
have
scholars to
con-
IV.
EXCAVATIONS
IX
AMUKRU.
57
sessed elude that the Semitic peoples of Palestine in the early period poslow type of civilization, and were the a without only True, in the knowledge of their own. of a written language
period they admit the Babylonian language and script had been used for diplomatic and inter-commercial ; and some purposes were think that the early portions of the Old Testament even
Amarna
Although on the highway between Egypt written in this language. the one hand, and Babylonia- Assyria as well as the countries on battles and conto the north, on the other, and the scene flicting of many in a forces, Palestine was removed, and nevertheless
Even, if the great centres of the Semites. the the city Humurtu, which thrived in the third millennium, was have inferred, and was Gomorrah as some of the Old Testament, situated in this district,we have no other evidence of activity here in on the part of the early kings of the East, except the campaign
measure
isolated, from
the days
may
although the civilization in Palestine as that of the region to the north and
it was of
a
vastly higher
that
indicated
by
the
archaeological
remains
that
unearthed at the several sites excavated. While the Amorite empire lasted, the efforts of the Babylonian were on the Mediterranean conquerors usually concentrated and
important itic Semthe old and more the favorite regions centres of civilizationexisted. These were for invasions, as is evidenced by the inscriptions; but unfortunately,
Mesopotamian
districts, where
as
mentioned
yet been
early
sources,
above, excavations in these parts have not as All the light that can be thrown the upon is gathered from contemporaneous in this Everywhere a later period.
can
land the ruin-hills of the past between the Lebanons, along the sea, broad
rivers, and
be
seen.
On
notably
along
sands thou-
of which
whereby reconstructed ; and that empire of the distant past, which has been known heretofore only through descendants of those that have survived its destruction, will take its place in the galaxy of nations that belong to the dawn
when opened up to the light of day be the history of the Amorites can
of history.
V THE
RACES
OF
AMURRU
into which poured Situated in such a central position, Amurru, from all sides, and for so many different races generations, was occupied by a people which doubtless ethnologically represented a
great mixture, and among type.
whom
were
found
more
than
one
distinct
does not permit us to approach Our present knowledge with any difficult distribution of the degree of accuracy the problem of the the great parallelogram different Semites throughout which they
possible to refer at least to three distinct types, which may be called the Arabian, Canaanite, and Aramaean. to form Bedouin, according to anthropologists, seem The modern They a homogeneous mixture of strange elements. unity with little occupied.
It is however
They of an old Semitic race. regarded as pure descendants dolichocephalic, have dark complexion, and a short, small and are Penned This may be said to be the Arab type. up straight nose.
are
that did not experience so many country has changed invasions, the type of the Arab Semite, it would seem, Even if tradition is correct in makinglittle in millenniums.
as a
it were
in Arabia,
of the Semites (seeChapter II),the Arab having lived for so long an era in his land very probably represents the purest type, because the admixture could not with other races Mesopotamia the home
have
been
so
great.
the exception of the impression gathered from the Old Testament tall in stature, we are indebted that the Canaanite was for our knowledge to the Egyptian monuments of the physiognomy
With
These monuments are especially rich of the Canaanite-Amorite. From in representations of the dwellers of this part of Amurru. it a study of the characteristics observed upon these monuments that this race produced by the great mixture would seem of Amurru, from a very that existed along the Mediterranean looked upon by the artists as a clearly defined type. early era, was His head was He had broad shoulders and was tall in stature. of
races
or
somewhat
narrow
V.
THE
RACES
OF
AMUBRU.
59
district. The
a
forehead
Large
The lower high cheek bones stood out from their hollow cheeks. heavy; usually part of the face was square and somewhat and was The lips by a thick and curly beard, which was pointed. concealed
was thin, and a mustache been comparatively rarely or it was The hair of the head was worn. allowed either shaved off, in frizzed curls, hung back of the neck. long and worn to grow the largest thrown over Women wore their hair in three masses, seem
to have
on
At Abu-Simbel by which
is painted yellow,
a
their eyes are blue, and the beard and eyebrows Habu the skin is painted rather pinker than flesh color, according Dynasty to Petrie; and in a tomb of the Eighteenth at Thebes,
it is white ; the eyes and hair being light red-brown. At Karnak the skin of the figures is alternately red and yellow. The Egyptian throw the monuments considerable light upon
of these Canaanite-Amorites. the lower class, usually represented loin cloth similar to the Egyptian, or
or
dress
The
as
peasant,
or
one
from
a
barefooted,
below
wore
either
he is found The
a
piece of cloth brought which after passing closely around the hips and chest was the shoulder, and formed a sort of cloak. This was up over made bands, of a thick rough wool material and was embroidered with lines, and circles. The color and design were Two conspicuous. large shawls, one blue, arranged so that the colors red and one would alternate, were sometimes substituted for the cloak. A soft leather belt gathered the folds about the waist. A cap and a handkerchief held by a filletwere a worn; sometimes wig, and red buskins, completed morocco the dress.1
1
yellow shirt with short sleeves, extending hem of the shirt was generally embroidered. it wore a similar shirt, but over class man
noble
or
upper
long
The
Racial
above Types;
description
Sayce
Races
is based on Petrie of the Canaanite-Amorite of the Old Testament, and Early History The Struggle
of
the Hebrews
p. 20;
and
Maspero
60
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
Efforts have been put forth by some to show that the Canaanite-Amorites representations
peans
;
from
were
others have declared the type to be distinctly Semitic, and, as above, represented at the present time by peoples in the Lebanon district. Doubtless the tallness of the stature and even other anatomical
type
characteristics resulted from the race mixture that the Taking everything, represents, and which the artist recognized. that however, into consideration, it is not at all improbable
was
itic, in this region, though partially Sempredominant foreign and perhaps aboriginal. represented much that was Syria there is found at present another type, which In Northern
a
may
be called Aramaean, also having all the heads being brachycephalic. peoples of Asia Minor show the same
have led to the conviction that in early times the country brachycephalic by a homogeneous and extremely
type
ited inhabThe
depicted
on
the
relief of Sennacherib, would hardly be possible for characteristic representation The Jewish type of today.
modern
also sculptor of Sheshonk but he gave Rehoboam, Israelites who were of portrayed subjects them the characteristic Canaanite features. As is known, about Since fifty per cent of Jews living at present are brachycephalic.
the home as tradition points to Aram ancient time, it is reasonable to assume
of what Egyptian
with what is called Aramaean. The question arises, did the dweller in the Euphrates resent region repfound in The status of the early period another type?
furnish us with material for the study of these and Akkad beards, and that the Semites wore people, but besides showing knowledge concerning their dress, little of value for the subject
Sumer
The under consideration is gained from them.3 have of a ruler designated as Amorite is that of ash, king of Mari ; but this is headless.
-
only
. .
.
statue
-um-
we
Sham-
Von
Luschan
Ausgrabungen und
See Meyer
Sumerier
VI
THE
LANGUAGES
of Amurru
many
AND
was
WRITING Semitic.
OF
There
can
AMURRU
be
far by
eras
as some
can
was
in spite of the opinion held scholars, it can be said that the prevailing language in all Semitic. The chief evidence of this fact is obtained
a
languages
through
country
elements Amorite deities fully determine compounded with of this ; in fact, our knowledge tically of the early Amorite language is pracdependent on the study of the personal names. the
names
study of the personal and geographical belonging to every period, early and late.
names
of the
The
Chiera in
recent volume
a
an
important
Babylonia
(UMBS
XI, 1 )
.
who By
had
a
from
well as this syllabary possible to acquire not only considerable knowledge concerning religious ideas expressed by the people in the giving of names, also most fact, some
in the cuneiform
literature
the
but
In and philological material. have left their traces in these of the roots lost in Hebrew names, many of which become explicable by the help of the cognate languages, while others remain It is possible to undetermined. time a fair-sized vocabulary at the present of Amorite words of the early period, simply from personal names. Many in Cappadocian names tablets, with the help of this knowledge,
construct to be Amorite. The same prove Amarna letters, and even in the Egyptian
important
lexicographical
is true
facts make it impossible to follow those who hold that not only the Philistines and Phoenicians but also the Amorites were pre-Hellenic invaders from the Aegean Islands, including Crete.
The
62
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
language
Assyrian,
and by many Akkadian, we know two which called branches of Semitic languages in the north, namely the Aramaic other be called the Amoraic, or the What may and the Hebrew.
are now
of the
Amorites
belong?
Besides
the Babylonian
An of the Amorites, is the parent of all these branches. of the philological material furnished us from the examination Amorite names Babylonian on tablets, prior to 2000 B. C, many language
and those from
B. C. as well as millennium tablets found in Palestine, show that the language Hebrew.
second The language
to the early part of the letters, and the few the A mama
closely resembles
dian, of the Babylonians and Assyrians, or the Akkafrom Amurru, the writer maintains came and under Sumerian influence developed differences. This pronounced grammatical
extensively throughout has left many traces of its influence upon the It is a question whether the language used Hebrew and Aramaic. in Syria at a much earlier period was carried into Arabia and became what we now recognize as Arabic, or whether both are from
Amurru,
Akkadian
language
having
in turn
source
of which
we
have
at present
no
knowledge.
is great difference of opinion as regards the kind of script Most scholars do not admit that the "Western used by the Amorites. Semites had a script of their own prior to 1000 B. C, when the Phoenician they suppose alphabet to have been introduced.
There
Since in the middle of the second millennium language and script were used in Palestine,
Amarna letters and the Ta'anach records of the Old Testament
must
B. C. the Babylonian
as
tablets, some
have
is evident from the hold that the earliest been first written in
cuneiform. It must be admitted that writing is not mentioned in the Pentateuch Abraham instructed Eliezer what until the time of Moses.
to say to his people.
When
he bought
piece of ground,
a
the
may
sons
of Heth at the city gate as witnesses, although have been drawn Jacob sent messengers up.
entreated
as
the favor of Esau ; Judah in promising to make a payment, his staff and the jewel he wore on a cord about his neck gave These facts, however, do not prove that writing was pledge.
the Aramaeans
or
Amorites.
Even
if those
VI.
THE
LANGUAGES
AND
WRITING
OF
AMUBKU.
63
that scribes need only mention referred to could not write, we hardly accompanied small nomadic groups. If the single tablet at Lachish, and the few others at Gezer and had not searched for Ta' anach had not been found, and the woman
wood
was
could not prove at present we at El-Amarna, in Palestine in the second millennium known at all
that writing B. C. As a
matter
the excavations of fact, nothing has been found through in the literary even thus far to show that the people of Israel were is it that absolutely nothing has been B. C. Why first millennium to the writings of the found in Palestine thus far contemporaneous to show that these writings actually existed in Old Testament ancient times. fact, from the antiquities discovered, that It is an acknowledged The Egypt extensively influenced the civilization of Palestine. Egyptians also conquered and ruled the land ; and their script was Nevertheless, besides such in Palestine. known as scarabs,
objects
steles, nothing has been preserved to show this. True, and know the Egyptian we princes in Palestine of the Amarna period in cuneiform; but was to their masters the language wrote of
a
few
Egypt,
monuments
of which
we
ourselves
have
so
and on papyri, not made use in Palestine? And while, as we said, we of the Biblical period from Palestine to show that any portion existed, down in Egypt at Elephantine a large of the Old Testament
the much evidence upon of by its representatives have not a scrap of evidence
number of records have been found belonging to a Jewish colony of the time of Nehemiah, which among other things refer to the temple the Jews had erected there. In Egypt, as is known, masses In Palestine not a fragment has of papyri have been preserved. been found ; but its absence among the antiquities discovered certainly does not prove that it had not been used ; for we know that the climate has not been favorable to its preservation. those who perhaps would concede that the Semitic district also used the Babylonian people of this cuneiform script for their own Amorite language, as did the Hittites, Mitannians
are
There
This, however, does people for their languages. If not seem reasonable in the absence of any proof whatsoever. Amorites in Palestine had used the cuneiform the script for thenlanguage, the excavations would certainly have yielded evidence of
and
the Vannic
64:
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
not only a littleevidence, but masses of it,in view And literary achievements. what is true of of their advanced is true of Babylonia and Assyria, Palestine and the rest of Amurru
this fact
"
and
where
have lived in many different of Amorites that they adopted Even in the time after it is assumed periods. an an ought to find evidences ; for clay was alphabetic script, we
tens of thousands
ever
ready
inexpensive
or
skins Hebrew
Some
names)
are
found
in the Cappadocian
language,
but not a in the Babylonian script writer can be said to be written in Hebrew Other peoples, like the Hittites, Let us or repeat. syllabary. Vannic Mitannians, syllabary peoples used the Babylonian and the Babylonian
the personal and other tablets written in to the single tablet known
(aside from
This
was
known
throughout
a
"Why
Amurru,
is,they had a script language ? The answer written in the Hebrew perishable material; which which they used upon of their own, for early examples fact is doubtless responsible of it not being
known at present. The high literary
writings of the Hebrews, acknowledged to hold the view that it wholly unreasonable Aramaeans, makes in a comparatively short time, and that the people of such arose A written and Amurru previously had no script of their own.
long history is certainly presupposed. This great Semitic people, who have handed down an incomparable literature, and whose system of writing was adopted by the Greeks literary language
having
earlier, certainly had in more perhaps A as well as their neighbors. ancient times a script of their own in the script is noted as having already taken development marked it of the writing, and makes place prior to the earliest examples
as
early
as
1200
B. C,
or
reasonable
present
was
more an can
into
had
archaeology. hieroglyphic in form, or had at least partially developed alphabetic script, as had the writing of the Egyptians, who
to conclude be shown
that it has by
much
alphabetic characters in their system in the earliest period of their history, cannot at present be surmised.
VI.
THE
LANGUAGES
AND
WRITING
OF
AMUBBU.
65
Petrie Khadini
in his excavations temple at Serablt el of the Egyptian in the Sinaitic Peninsula found an inscription in unknown which
Gardiner and about 1500 B. C. occurs "goddess" that the word b'lt (ba'alat) Cowley conjecture in the inscription, on the basis of which they identify other characters
characters,
dates
from
words, and rebuild the old theory and read a dozen or more origin of the Semitic alphabet. of the Egyptian language as was As is known, the Babylonian used in Amurru data At present there are no B. C. early as the third millennium this upon which to base an intelligent theory as to how and when introduced in the West. language script were and the cuneiform historical period in the earliest known We know that Babylonia had already
come
Gilgamesh,
VIII
and and
Etana, into conflictwith Amurru. others of this era, invaded the land. The
resources
Shar-banda,
of the country, as well as the inviting also to Lugal-zaggisi, loot that could be secured, were Gudea, Sargon, Xaram-Sin, the kings of the Ur Dynasty, and for the introduction But exactly what movement was responsible
IX.)
others.
into that region is not known. language of the Babylonian guage lanAs it is impossible to state exactly why the use of the Aramaic lonia, Asia, including Cappadocia, Babywestern spread all over
the diplomatic period it was impossible to determine what was responsible for the introduction the international commercial as and diplomatic of the Babylonian language in the previous and earlier millenniums. Persia, and that in the Persian
even
Egypt,
in the firstmillennium
VII
THE
NAME
AMURRU
OR
URU
in the Old Testament has been as familiar The word "Amorite" to Biblical students during the past centuries as almost any other designation of ancient peoples, but with comparatively little standing underThis is largely due to the fact the term meant. as to what
that the imperial
came
to
close prior to
2000 B. C.
The who
two
for a people used in the Old Testament lived in Palestine and the region east of the Jordan, as is generally only with the gentilic ending and with understood, appears
term
"Amorite,"
"the Amorite."1 exceptions always with the article,hd'amori inscriptions, the name In the cuneiform of the land is written A-mu-ri, A-mu-ur-ri-iki , A-mur-ri-e, """A-mur-ri, phonetically Marki and """Mar-Tit." In A-mur-ra, etc., and with the ideograms
the time of Seti I the land is called be vocalized Amor, and refers to the district or which can (seeChapter XIV). called Beka', between the Lebanons valley now distinction between the u and o Since the cuneiform no made the Egyptian
'mr,
inscriptions from
vowels,
in Josephus, of the name of the pronunciation Greek, and (Ant. and that of the Hebrew, 'A(ioP(e)ia I: 13, 1 f.), Syriac versions of the Old Testament, it is certain that the vowel in view
u
written
The doubling in cuneiform was o, i. e. Amor. pronounced of the forms is due to the long vowel of the r found in many In other words, Amurru=Amuru. Although the which precedes.
vowel
1
2
was
pronounced
instead
of the English
'Afwppu,
'
u,
Amurru
will
The
LXX
transliterated
'Afioppaioi,
A/xappaiot,
'Ap.p,opeLO, etc.
Other
orthographic
near
21).
In the time of : A-mu-ur-ri-i (Meissner called is written """ A-mur-ri, tablets the name examples
follow
Sippar
matdti A-mur-ri, and mdtdti A-mu-ri is written In the time of the Assyrian period the name also """Mar-Tu. 1908 29 ff.) A-mur-ri, A-mur-ri-e, etc. Tofteen AJSL (See
"""A-mu-ri, alA-mu-ur-ra, """A-mur-ra,
(66)
VII.
THE
NAME
AMURRU
OR
UEU.
67
be used here instead of Amor (u),because the name and Amorro is thus written in cuneiform, from which most of our material for discussion is drawn. difficultiesattending etymologies of ancient geographical fully appreciated, for they may belong to an era far names are happen to have evidence that remote from the one in which we may they had been used, a notable example of which is the name under
They have to former belonged may consideration. perchance invaders of the land, who were of another race, and who spoke a different language ; in this instance, however, this is not probable. The
signified 'the mountaineer,' since in dwelt in hills. This was the Amorites the Old Testament supported by reference to the Hebrew but this means 'amir, word Others have endeavored to show "summit," not "mountain."
name
Some
have
that the word was of Sumerian or Assyrian origin ; but in the light of the facts of this discussion, this does not appear plausible.3 We know the origin of the geographical name Ashur (Assyria); how
"We are familiar the city Ashur gave to the country its name. in Babylonia, how Akkad with the history of early kingdoms became dominant among the principalities, and the whole land was
called Akkad
;
It can empire which instances that countries received their names through the ascendancy Moreover, like every other empire, ancient of city states. was governed from a centre, and this, as we and modern, Amurru the country which it ruled its name (seeChapter X). not only the name of the country, but also the name Ashur, Tilla, Mash, and of the chief deity of the land, as were the name (seeChapter XI). In consequence perhaps Anu of the
shall see, gave Amurru was
became
of a great in many
same
Amurru
as
an
early
Sumerian
term
= mat abubi. of storms," written kur-mar-ur He holds that ma'Mar-TU is to be read ma'mar-rii, a confusion of signs for """a-mar-ru as an {BabyloniacaVI p. 55). Haupt regards Amurru ancient
Assyrian
name
He
ammaru
connects
it with "abundance"
(JAOS
68
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
instance it will be indicated to which the weak 'alef and mem consonants
suffer phonetic changes, the name it had not been for this fact, the writer would not have had the privilege of presenting this work, for much of what is here offered long ago. would have been known Amor The
goes
Owing to reference is made. in the word, which readily If in variant forms. appears
back to
an
as
Ashur
is from
Ashar.
In the early period, cf. Amar. with the deity's name compounded for Amel-dElbe the Sumerian Galu-dAmar-Dingir which may Amar-a-pa-', in the late Babylonian period,cf.^f ""fl/-rfl-;jfl-', Amar; Amar-na-ta-nu, Ama
texts, Amar; r-sa-al-ti and in the Assyrian is equated with dAmarBecause the deity 'Amaru it (II R 54: 52g), and for many other reasons
"
is found in Amar highly probable that the form of the name has arisen. This this syncretistic formation from which Marduk has been recognized long ago (seeAmurru p. 120 f.).
is well known, """Mar-tu and MarM are ideograms resent of or repdMar-tu and dMar are also ideograms Amurru; the name to indicate that Amar This would seem for the deity Amurru. and is the fact. As stated above, Amar-Utug Mar are related; and this That the names became Marada. became Marduk of and Amar-da As the deity, dMar
d Amurru are also identical, is conclusively and which shown by a tablet recently published by Scheil (RA 14, 140), Sar dMar in two is a parallel text to one published by Virolleaud.
passages
by sar A-mu-ri-im "king of the former text is reproduced it seems in the latter text. And certain reasonably of Amuri" in the Biblical is reproduced that the shortened form of the name for which the Syriac version gives Amoriah, as well as the 2 Chron. 3: 1 (see below). It seems Septuagint in the passage therefore that no other conclusion can be reached but that Mar and is the older or origWhich Amar name. are inal, variants of the same
Moriah,
name,
the
See Amurru
p. 101.
In
name
books the
name
the ideogram
dSVR.
VII.
THE
NAME
AMURRU
OR
CRU.
69
Besides Mar, the Ashar, Ashir, and Ashur. is written Mer, Me-ir, and Mar. name frequently in Mar (which, as above, =Amurru) is found very in dMarki and dXiu-Mar'!i; i. e. the god and goddess as early names used in late (see Chapter X). This form was of the city Mar meanmar be the origin of the Aramaic Amorite names, ing and may
same as
in the
name
"lord".5
lonia Mir was carried to Babyof the god written Mer and in the earliest known of the early period, cf. En-Me-ir-har the nanus In the obelisk of Manishtusu, dynasty. Erechian found in It is commonly Anum-pi-Me-ir and Il-ka-Me-ir occur. comare pounded the Ur Dynasty, about thirty different names where it is In the First Dynasty with it, as Mer-ka-gi-na, etc. IH-i-madWe-ir-a-bu-su, Warad-dWe-ir, found in such names as
The
name
Tukulti-Me-ir , king of Hana dWe-ir,* etc. It is found in the name I-tur{TSBA 8, 35"2). It also is found in the syncretistic name Me-ir (see Chapter XI). In the syllabaries such forms with prefixed
/7w "god" The form dMur where,
occur,
seems
like I-H-Me-ir?
to be confined to the syllabaries of deities, it is equated with the of the deity's name,
like other forms Moreover, sign dlM, indicating that it is a storm-deity like Adad. in the light of the above, the writer has no hesitation in asserting
that Mar,
5
Mer, Mur8
which
are
names
in Assyrian
Ma-ri-la-rim
name
with
Mar-lain
occurrences
are
of the deity's
etc.
in Amorite
names
inscriptions
Mar(TUR)-su-ri,
West
from
in the personal Cf. also the occurrences Semitic inscriptions like Mar-barak Mar-j" (^"13~)!3), h"n
etc. ("]OD"lD),
('mO),
demon,
or
Mar-samak rather
a
Note
also the
name
depotentized
deity written
NH^NIE
of a god (seeAmurru
or
p.
162).
15
See Holma
See CT
Acta
:
Societates Scientiarum
Fennicae
45 3, 1: 13, IT.
7 ; also I-lu-Mi-ir, CT 24 18 : R2 ; and I-lu-Me-ir = dIM, CT 29 45 : 24. Probably Tl'?N of the Zakir inscription should be considered = in connection with Mer instead of Uru (seebelow). Cf. also "11~l3 Pir'Lidzbarski letter, time of Ashurbanipal, Mer or Pir'-f'ru in an Aramaic
7
25 20
ZA
8
31.
Cf. Mu-ur
and
Mu-rn
dIM
29 45:
21-22); and
also
70
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
deity's name, that of the storm-god variant forms of the same which had been brought into Babylonia ; and that they of Amurru9 in turn are variant forms of Amar. The phonetic change of 'Amur(ru) = 'Awur= 'tfr,ecognition r
are
of which 'Awuru
followed the writer's discovery that Amurru 'Uru, in Aramaic, i e., 'wr or (TIN),needs
was no
written discussion,
since it is generally accepted by scholars. That is, 'Amur and identical. This is illustrated in the Talmudic are word
"west,"
'Ur
for
namely
'Ur
means 'Oria (NH1N), which also and 'Urta (WHIN) meaning and the feminine
doubtless
Jews
experienced
had
("HN)which
ness, "dark"light" should also mean ordinarily meant is the question is asked, 'Why etc. In the Talmud west," The answer the West called 'Uria and 'Ur?' given is, because it Palestine.10 "divine (variant, "light"), meaning meant air" There
can amurru
was
for
"west"
martu),
country adjoining
represented that direction, that the origin of the Talmudic words 'Ur and 'Uria "west," 'Urta "night," have etymologically also
to be explained
as
coming
from
Amurru
or
'Uru.
In the early periods of Babylonian history, by the association of sounds, scribes used different signs having a similar pronunciation to represent the name Following are some of the god Uru. of the signs used, all of which have the value been used for the deity's name.
dMu-u-ru-u
=
uru,
have
dIM
is identified each instance Mur Amorite Cf. also that represents the chief storm-deity. ki (CT 25 1:7). CT 25 20:7 furnishes us with a very
(CT
25
17:28).
In
d
on
""'""'
"-"UM with
read
dIM, dIM
d
=
"^-'^IM.
dM
ur or
to
the storm-god, is clear from such CT 29 45 : 20 ; 24 32 : 120 ; 25 20 : 8, etc. In CT 25 20 : 8 as passages d is equated with d "u*-m*+ilM 4- IM. Perhaps a-do-adTM this form of the is found in the Old Testament name Meri-ba'al name written
Mer(Me-ir) is a reading of
(^DHO)
See Jastrow
Talmudic
VII.
THE
NAME
AMURRU
OR
UBU.
"1
is in strict accordance with our knowledge of the expedients ter scribes (see also under shar. Chapresorted to by the Babylonian "servant" is used XVII). The sign for uru or ur meaning
This
as
an
ideogram
or
meaning in writing the latter name Uru-gal.11 The is employed the sign ur13 meaning "irrigation"; "liver." sign urn1'2 meaning the ordinary sign uru meaning "city." {Amurru p. 113); the sign
p.
uru14
as
phonogram
in the deity's
names.
Uru,
{Amurru
113).
The
sign
uru
meaning
"whirlwind,
city;"
the
sign
BUR-BUR
uri
Uru or pronunciation literature, and also in the late syllabaries, where such obsolete deities' names the past were represented preserved, unquestionably of the name the god under consideration. of
"While the
name
the name of the all used to represent short, these many signs standing for the Ur as the name of a god in early Babylonian
Amurru,
names
clature of the deity is found so extensively in the nomenit is seldom found after the fall of Babylonia, of early in the Amorite It occurs to 2000 B. C. or subsequent
U-ru-mil-ki, time of Sennacherib (I R 38: 50),U-ri-im-me-i (III R 9: 51), and perhaps in a few other Assyrian inscriptions. As would be expected, it is more commonly used in the land
Amurru,
Uri, Uriah,
in the
name
Urijah,Uriel,
Melchior
Shede-Ur
Amarna
found,
and
it
occurs
tablets, written Mil-ki-U-ri and Mil-ku-ru. U-ru-sa-Um the name (Jerusalem) (see Amurru p. 175). It is found in one of the earliest Aramaic inscriptions, the stele which Zakir
of Hamath
and
La'ash
dedicated
to El-Ur
pV?K),15i. e.
11
12
13
Cf. also Uruu"-ma "sMas (CT 24 10: 8). Cf d "-rumUrum (CT 25 11: 26). d Cf. "Nin-vUr (CT 25 1: 8).
Cf. Uru" '""-Tab The name
14
(CT 25 20:17).
in
a
15
found "^tDIN
Phoenician
inscription at Byblos
as
has
been suggested is the same as 'firi-milki (= "I^OTIN)defectively written but it contains the name of the deity. It is not improbable that the names
72 Aloros. But
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
in this connection than familiarly known of the capital of Amurru, else, it is the name " " Ur of the Chaldees (seeChapter X )
what
is
more
important
all
as
be difficult to those unfamiliar with Semitic philology it may how this name could appear in these variants, but when comprehend it is recalled that the Aramaic was written without vowels, and To
that
some
Semites
that
a
used
weak
w readily unites with a forms a long vowel, the phonetic changes sound and intelligible. Then also it must be borne in mind that most become niums of our data are found in the cuneiform script, and that for millenAmorites taking with poured into Babylonia from Amurru
to represent
the
same
them
written differently in (lifof this deity, which was erent by different guilds of scribes (seeChapter I). centres Amar, Mar Uru being an Amorite or god, it is reasonable to
the
name
expect
or
that his consort's name would Ur-tu, like Ashir and Ashirtu, Anu
etc. Recently
the writer revived the explanation suggested long ago ideogram for Amurru, is the feminine of that Mar-tu, the common Mar.17 usual explanation is that it is Sumerian, and means "the entering in of Mar" (thesign TU meaning erebu "to enter"). It is not impossible that Mar-Tu was selected by the Babylonian
Areli
name
The
Amurru,
ancient Babylonian scribe, cf. SAI the value Uri = Akkad and Ari
The
the
has
Whether
Uri and
Ari
must
related question; be regarded as unscientific, as per See also the discussion in the following chapter on Ar-data and Ar-ivada, also written El-data and Uri-wada respectively. 10 Cf. Amurru ~HN (above referred to), Simanu with with JVD, Shamash tJ'IC, arahshamna with with pJHN, with ptrmD, argamanu question
cannot
be considered
as
is of
course
but
Nabu-rimannu
as
with
p"11DJetc.,
,
change well established, as in Assyrian. it had become w of the after to show that Martu seems actually represents
a
phonetic
Olmstead has called the writer's attention to the classical pronunciation. Marathias and 'Ami-it, which seem to show the same.
VII.
THE
NAME
AMURRU
OK
URU.
73
scribes
As for the word representing the "west." 'Crta had a related meaning, and is above noted the Talmudic perhaps the feminine of 'tTria. Some scratched and years ago the writer found endorsements
as an
ideogram
written
with
ink
on
Babylonian the
name
contract
period, which
'most
contained
Nin-IB
it
was
to read Enmastu. proposed Fully a score of different explanations have since been offered by different scholars.115 nearly as many Recently the writer had the good fortune to find also the reading
(ntPUX), for
which
of the
name
in
Syllabary
in the Yale
was
Babylonian
Collection,
and also that [MI 53:
Amorite,
The
syllabary
288) reads
This
means
as
follows
'
ur-ta
IB
| u-ra-su
i sa JXin-IB
su-ma
that it is
"a
is to be read that the sign IB, called urasu, This seems name (or of dXi"i-IB.""
ur-ta, and
sign)
to
mean
name
is to be read
see (N)irwtrta*0
JAOS
37
pretations, collection of the different readings and interhe regarded an where the writer suggested additional and what based on the syllabary : preferable explanation,
a
See Amurru
p. 196 for
7na-as
|MAS
\ ma-a-su
were
j dXin-IB,
views
{JA
(K 6335). and Mastu gods Masu Liturgies 147 reads Enursat (NinXI p. 81) 411) and Thureau-Dangin (RA p.
Langdon
Anusat;
Maynard
or
Hommel
(in Krausz Gottemamen p. 59, n. 2) Nin-Numusda Ninurud (AJSL 34 29 f.) Ur-ru-da; Albright (JAOS 38 197 ff.)
which
or as
Ninurut
may
become
Ninurtu
and
Ninurta, is explained
as
'Lord
of Armenia'
'Lord
The latest is that of Luckenbill {AJSL of Iron.' it isn't clear "that JIB'IJN renders the whether however. That is "the sign Anu-Mastuf for deity is to be pronounced, just as The writer cannot follow Luckenbill etc.
in Sumerian.
and
determinative
dingir
means
'god.'
In spite of all Luckenbill has written for reason modifying his view on this ; 20 The view was by the writer advanced
18
(AJSL
see
no
also Chapter
sees
(JAOS
74
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOKITES.
like Isin to have been dropped; but the initialn appears p. 328), Inurta, "who was from Nisin. Although unquestionably a goddess ing originally, became a god in later Babylonia, traces are found showfound in the In a letter that her former sex was recognized.
British Museum of the University repeats the name; the latter dMAS
are u
(Harper ABL
358:
showing Additional proof that dNin-IB or Inurta is to be addressed. Uru is to be found in the explanatory identified with Amurru or listof deities.21 letters there is a place Bit Nin-IB mentioned In the Amarna and Jerusalem showing called "'Bit dNin-IB: also a temple in or near One scholar had in that region. that the deity was worshipped and that suggested that Nin-IB is here an ideogram for Shamash,
dMAS,
Another has suggested that the place referred to is Beth-Shemesh. The only basis is Beth-Anath. it stands for Antum, and the name for these suggestions is that such shrines are known to have existed in Palestine ; but this does not appear to have much force. Since Antu
was
the consort
of Anu,
Ashirtu
etc., it seems
salem Jeru-
in the
two
written Nabataean
Uru-saUm
in the Amarna
the represented characters of the Aramaic En-Ur-ta {CT 24, 25 This finds support in the name
en
ba'al.
find, the prefixed element probably must be regarded as being masculinized although after the deity was originally {n)in i. e., la'alat "lady," as en it may have been construed the initial n dropped, and into s, In-arta "lord"; then since in the late period r frequently passes of the recent could 'most
2i
be pronounced
"
In-usta,
which
would
be
reproduced
in Aramaic
shows Amurru,
25 11:26. 25
Another
passage
dNin-IB,
III R
57
(of. Mn-Mar^-ra,
was name. so
12:20; and again that There can be little 81 cd. Allotte de la Fuye Doc. Presar:
goniques
another
55:1, writing
7). who
of the
was
VH.
THE
NAME
AMUKKU
OR
URU.
"D
to think that it contains the name of the deity Uru (seeAmurru 175 ff.), and it seems reasonable to propose that Bit dNin-IB is the
near means
ba'alat TJrta, is simply due to the use and script at that time in Palestine.
The question whose name his consort
language
arises, where is the habitat of the deity Amurru, Mar, Mer, Mir, 'TJr,and or Amur, was written Amar to this question Martu (Mashtu) or Urtu. The answer
land Amurru
VIII
AMORITES
Since
we
are
IN
BABYLONIA
upon
existence of Amorite
The Amorites
data gathered from contemporane for our knowledge the early of these are first considered. civilization,
a
list of ten antediluvian kings, to the ten antediluvian patriarchs. True, they are kings, but
they
have handed
Amorite, the are nevertheless into Babylonia legend doubtless having been brought with the Berossus, who lived in the people who migrated from the West. first half of the third century B. C, wrote three books which he
dedicated
Unfortunately, with the of Syria. exception of a few fragments copied by Apollodorus and Polyhistor, and which were quoted by Eusebius and Syncellus, his important work has been lost. The antediluvian kings mentioned
are as
to Antiochus,
king
in these fragments
1 2 3
follows.1
10 Saren
; films Alori
'AXcopo?, Aloros ; e'/e Ha/3u\ci"vo"; Xa\8"io? 'AXcnrapos, Alaparus, Alaporus, Alapaurus 'AfnjXoiv, 'AfiiWapos,
(36000years)
3 Saren
e"
e" nauTi/3i/3\a"i/,
Chaldaeis
civitate
13 Saren
'A/x/Aeva"v, Ammenon
ex
Chaldaeis
Par12 Saren
cat
YlavjiftiftXcov
18 Saren
10 Saren ; ix
AacoTO?, Aa")?,
Da(v)onus ;
irot^-qv
e/c
HavTi/3i/3\aiv
Edoreschus
TlavTt{3i/3\a"v
8
18 Saren
Amemphsinus; 'A^e/i-v/rizw,
HaXSalo*;
sk
Aapayxw, 10 Saren
Chaldaeus
Lancliaris (Chancharis)
Zimrnern KATS
(76) p. 531.
The
list is taken
from
VIII.
AMOEITES
IX
BABYLONIA.
sk
Aapay^av, 8 Saren
Chaldaeus
10
Lancharis
: vto";
'ilTiap18 Saren
Sayco, Kittel and others, as mentioned in Amitrni 63 ft'., were that several of the names consider translated into Hebrew, archs and form the list of antediluvian patriOld Testament, while others are considered equivalent of the has been generally Aloros to Babylonian names. the regarded
Zimrnern, Honmiel,
Jeremias,
assisted in the The chief reason work of creation. why this goddess is considered the same as the first Chaldean king is because she is the 'fashioner
same as
the Babylonian
mother-goddess
Arurur
who
considered to be a corruption of is thought to be the original of Adam. Amillaros is said to be the Babylonian or Almelon amelu, "man," which was "man." into the Hebrew, Ammenon is Enosh, translated, of mankind. Adapa, which
regarded the into Qenan or
ummanu
same
'
Alaporus
has been
Hommel
as although no such personal name is known. is considered by Megalaros Amegalarus or Edoranchus, to be Amel-Aruru. the seventh king corresponding
as
"workman,"
which
was
translated
regarded king of Sippar, who as the a mythological from his deity, and ruled 365 years, the same received revelations lived. The king Edoranchus, however, that Enoch number ruled 64,800 years according to the list of Berossus. Otiartes has been
same
to Enoch,
seventh
in the Hebrew
list,has been
En-me-dur-an-Tci,
as
Ubar-Twbu,
and
as
Atar-hasis
(seealso
ton Bar-
writer believes that these scholars are mistaken in their supposition that the Hebrew the antediluvian patriarchs names of in this way. Although both lists contain ten names, originated and the tenth in both is in
common
a
seem
to have
(seeAmurru
Enoch
f.).
The
alim-ma
name
78
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
but any
scarcely
names are
the two
as
individuals
or
their
names
is
in
Ebed-'Ur the ahu, i. e., "Ebed-'Ur, read it also Semitic, perhaps Following in the second brother," namely of the preceding king. and identifications or equivalents that column are the comparisons
have been proposed by different scholars, and offered by the writer :
1
'AAwpos,
Aloros
Alaparus
'A/utjAcdv,Alnielon
'AAaTrapos,
3
4
'AfuAAapos,
'A/u/iow,
Ammenon
5 6 7
MtyaAapos,
Aawvos,
Amegalarus Davonus
Aaws,
EveSwpaxos,
Edoranc'lius
8 9
10
Ameinphsinus ,A/xEjtn/'ii'05,
QnapTtjs,
'ApSaras, Otiartes
5 Htcrouflpos,"roi^pos, Xisuthrus
The which
names
the Babylonians
name
of these Chaldean antediluvian kings, posed recognized as their progenitors, are comelements besides five or six of them being
compounded
Amurru
with the
name
striking proof his original home. as Amurru From there went forth peoples who settled Babylonia it came of Genesis : "And at a very early time. We are reminded
deity, IJru, is certainly of the chief Amorite looked upon that the Semitic Babylonian
There
see
can
be littledoubt
p. 64, spring
that Aloros
is El-Uru
(seeChapter
VII, etc.,
also
4
Amurru
Friend
Samaria
5
1909).
a
efiitplace
BA VI
name
(Josh. 18:28)
J^y
5 p. 83 ; Im-me-ir-i-li,ibid. 98.
No
comment
.
this identification.
Cf Cf
With wa-da
mentioned along the coast of the Mediterranean, letters, once times in the Amarna written El-da-ta (139:5). several 1 this name , cf alAr-wa-da {ibid.01 : 13, etc.)once written alVri(URU)
.
iTftpO
the place
32 etc.
Ar-data
(104:42).
VIII.
AMOEITES
IN
BABYLONIA.
' "
to pass, as
a
they
plain in the land of Shin'ar and they dwelt there" (Gen. 11: 2). foreign Babylonia was ruled during its long history by many peoples, the Amorites, Elamites, Cassites, Assyrians, Chaldeans, ites from what follows that the AmorPersians, Greeks, etc.9 It seems in more than one period conquered and ruled Babylonia.
More
was
than
published
20,
of a tablet ago the obverse of a fragment containing the rulers of the Ur and Nisin dynasties decade
The
reverse
(BE
47).
in
a
by Poebel. Nippur
of this tablet has since been published This, together with two other tablets, also found at fragmentary condition, contain It is supposed that when The
one
inscribed.
the time of the deluge to the time written apparently in the which was
reign of Enlil-bani, the eleventh king of the Nisin dynasty, records that king as the one-hundred and thirty-fourth from the deluge. The
other tablet, it is thought, was written in the time of Damiqilishu,the last king of that dynasty. (UMBS V 2, 3 and 5.) The
been preserved on these fragments Kish, Erech, Ur, and Awan. Unfortunately none are of the have been preserved. Prior rulers' names of the last mentioned
to the discovery
firstfour kingdoms
that have
the existence of the dynasties of these tablets, even The rulers' names that have been preserved was unknown. of the firstthree, including variants, follow:
8
There
are
those
who
hold
that
they
came
Babel. "toward
Most
of Gen. 13:11. Sinuhe legend shows that the country east of Byblos of the Egyptian was as the called Qedem ; and it is not unlikely that this region is meant the Semites referred to came, into Shinar. quarter whence who moved
the east,"
scholars, because
however,
translate
from
In the period of 1902 years prior to the time of Alexander, Berossus kings, 49 Chaldean, 9 Arabian, refers to dynasties consisting of 8 Median two others of 11 and 45 kings each (seeMeyer, Geschichte des Alterand
tums
I 2,
corroboration from the inscriptions of the Olmstead has called the writer's attention to
translation
goes back
Schnable
of Eusebius, which, as is known, is used in place of the usual Medes, recently referred (OLZ 1911, 19 f.).
to Berossus, Mar
80
the
empire
of
the
amorites.
Kingdom
op
Kish
900 years 840
a
9. Ka-lu-mu-un
10. Zu-ga-gi-ib
11. Ar-wu-u
(Ga-lu-mu-un)
muskinu
12. E-ta-na
720 635
410
"
"
13. Pi-li-qam,
(En-Men-Nun-na)
son son
611
900
1.200
"
"
16. Mas-Sal-Nun-na,
17.
Mes-Zdr-Mug{1), son
Kingdom
of
Eanna
(Erech)
priest and king
325 420 1,200 100
years
"
1. Mes-ki-in-ga-se-ir,son 2. En-Me-ir-Kar,
son
of Shamash,
high
of the high
Kingdom
priest of Kullab
of
126
Ur
80 years 30
25 36
"
1. Mes-An-Ni-Pad-da
2. Mcs-Ki-Ag-Nun-na,
son
3. E-lu 4. Ba-lu
"
written in a Semitic be said of All that can form; while the rest are in Sumerian. Kalumun "lamb," the first two names, and Z tigagib "scorpion," The
first five
names,
as
well
as
others,
are
is that
they
are
Semitic. Syllabary,
Ar-wi-u
(Ar-bu-um), according
Poebel regards
e
to
Chiera's
name
Amorite
as
is Amorite.
the
Etana
Sumerian,
anna, name
be without parallel. a title or Moreover, this would of a epithet, and not the name is unquestionably the to the writer that the name It seems man. Etan, mentioned a number the Old Testament same as of times in of be human, this would
Chronicles
Psalm.10
and
Kings
and
in the
heading
of
the
eighty-ninth
10
ago
by Professor
Jastrow,
see
BA
III
VIH.
AMORITES
IX
BABYLONIA.
not of royal origin, for lie was called "the apparently was " pret "He ruled all lands" ; which it is reasonable to intershepherd. In the epic in which Etana is the hero, as including- Amurru. inscribed in the Assyrian period, there are no earmarks which was
Etana
The been written originally in Sumerian. of its having early in the library of Mr. J. Pierpont Morgan Babylonian fragment in the epic, to Further, the remark shows the same. of Shamash,
as well and take the road to the mountain," the part played by the eagle, point at least to a mountainous as Etana, who was Perhaps district in which the myth originated. a
the serpent,
"go
now
usurper,
the West.
Moreover,
as
mentioned
above,
his
name name
The
qam
Pi-lias
being As
a
Sumerian,
meaning
"with
name,
267).
Testament
names
in the Casperiod, Bu-la-aq-qu site, and Be-la-qu of the First Dynasty, that can properly be compared. "axe"; These words may but this would mean scarcely be an appropriate for a child's name. The root palag meaning
"to means separate, and Aramaic split." Peleg, is a branch "canal," stream, which is separated from the main body of water. A child could be referred to as a " branch " or " offspring"
this also would be without parallel. a comparison with Peleg of the Old There are several other reasonable.11
in Hebrew
common,
"creature
Apil-Nergal, "child of Nergal," etc. of Addu," It is to be noted that it is highly probable that the names of all the known rulers up to this time, including the ten antediluvian, Semitic, and also that most of them are West Semitic or Amorare ite. Following these, most of the known in appear rulers' names
a
Sumerian
dress;
were
but
proof
11
that they
stated in the introduction, this is no thus pronounced. In fact, there are many
as
writer's attention has been called by Olmstead to Phaliga on the Euphrates, by Isidore, and the Pallacopas canal, with its survival mentioned in Faluja,west of Bagdad.
The
82
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOKITES.
that lead
us
are
of the Kish Dynasty, as well following two dynasties, are compounded with the deity whose (or Mash). This is the name of a
names
as name
three in the
of Mesh
was
brought
from
Amurru
name
(see Chapters
En-Me-ir-Kar
XII
and
deity
to be
En-Me-ir another
in the
form
appears
to the writer
(see Chapter of Ba'al Mer or Amurru for god is prefixed to the names of the VII). The last three rulers of the Erech Dynasty, #dio, as is well known, appear as deities in later periods.
of the name determinative
The
name as
Shar-bdn-da Sumerian.
. .
regarded
in
a
read
as
Lugal-Bdn-Da,
and
(Ta'anach 3: 13),
tablet bought
4 (ibid.:
1907,
(Amarna Letters)seem
that it is West
"son" fact that the sign meaning was selected to represent the figures as the sound ban would alone suggest this. Shar-banda hero in the legend concerning the tablets of fate which the Zu bird tain, stole from the palace of the god Enlil. There is a distant moun-
time of Shar-banda (Aleppo) to the north, and Tidnum east, Halma (UMBS V 20 and 21). In the early period Tidnum
in this myth, called Sabu. mentioned of inscriptions dealing with events of the the on with Elam refer to wars and Dumu-Zi
on was a
the west
name
of
is to be identified as Aleppo the country Amurru; (see and Halma Chapter XII). This may be the earliest reference to an invasion conquered probably above, Etana of the "West, although, as mentioned Amurru. Dumu-Zi,
the
same
kingdom, is considered the fourth ruler of the Eanna in later periods was the Semitic Tammuz, as who lover of Ishtar. Besides this Smnethe husband or as
name
Du-'u-zu, Du-u-zu,
etc.
Tain-
(Hebrew),
12
(Syriac), Bc^ovs,
seem
The
general
frequently
nu
that the
documents,
=
may
been
determinative
amelu
name of an official nu-ban-da, is also Semitic ; in which case (CT 12, 35: 1 b).
Vni.
AMORITES
IN
BABYLONIA.
83
is that the Sumerian Dumu-Zi, understanding faithful son," is the original form of the or form of the name as Dumi-Zi-Ab-Zu, appears deep," which
some
which
name.
means
' '
true
An
"faithful
son
enlarged of the
think has been suggested by the picture of the It is not improbable however, sun that rising out of the ocean. is composed, the two Sumerian signs, of which Dumu-Zi represent the pronunciation of a Semitic name.
mother is written dSir-du, and in the emeof Tammuz' like Sartu or sal dialect, dZe-ir-tu; which might represent a name Moreover Sarah. the dynastic text shows that he was a usurper.
The
name
'He
is called a hunter or fisherman from the city HA-A, probably In the Gilgamesh a the land Shubaru.13 city of epic, which is muz; pre-eminently Semitic, the goddess Ishtar fell in love with Tam-
was and after his death, which perhaps premature, she decreed a yearly wailing for him. In the epic, ' Ishtar 's descent into Hades,' the goddess, in her efforts to restore her youthful lover to life,descends into the underworld. He is referred to also
in the Adapa
legend
as
unlikely that Adapa also will be found who had been deified.
The
worship
of the youthful
god
who
of
has called attention to the name being written AHA in BA 25, and in SBH SO : 25, 26 ; that the city is mentioned in the two : texts above referred to, as being destroyed Shar-banda at the time of and Dumu-Zi (UMBS IV 1, p. 117) ; that in an incantation text (CT 15 : 6) the
13
Poebel
VI, p. 675
ideogram
BA
Shu-ba-ri, and Shu-'a-a-ra in the above two texts (in Shuwari (for and SBH) which apparently point to the pronunciation Shubari) ; that in II R 57, IV, the ideogram is glossed tuba; and that in
IV R ideogram, 36, 1 col. 1 : 26-28 there which in each case was
was
are
is rendered
a city of Sumer but it is altogether possible that another whose written the three cities mentioned above, perhaps called Shubaru, is here referred of to, as indicating the origin of the ruler. Moreover, the city would scarcely have been mentioned, in this connection, if it had been one close by Erech.
name
tablets of the Ur dynasty a Eridu and Ur, and in the above incantation text together T'MBS IV 1, p. 121). It is not impossible that there was
was
concludes in the southwestern Sumer, since in part of HA-A is mentioned together with Erech, city with Eridu
three
the
same
(see
HA-A;
84
THE
EMPIRE
OP
THE
AMORITES.
heat each year, and who in the rising forth life with him to the fields and
is known to have existed from an early period among meadows, The yearly observance of the feast of Adonis at such the Semites. the ancient centres as Byblos, in fact, it can be said, throughout
Semitic world, has led scholars in former decades to look upon Adonis myth originated. Syria as the region in which the Tammuzis Sumerian, as stated, as well as True, the early form of the name
that of his father dNin-Gis-Zi-Da (eme-saldUmun-Mu(s)-Zi-Da), but this is no criterion. The fact his sister dGestin-An-na; and
in the Semitic world ; that Tammuz from the city HA-A a usurper was ; that he figures in so many (seeChapter other Semitic epics, and legends, as well as in Egypt XIV p. 120),favors a Semitic origin, with the and Miiller EM that the myth
is
a common
one
further possibility of a confusion of tales of several individuals to form the Tammuz myth. to show In Amurru, p. 79, and MI, p. 3, the writer endeavored Semitic name, that Gis-bil-ga-Mes (Gilgamesh)was a West which Mash that of the god Mesh or and that the epic was district. More recent peculiarly identified with the Lebanon this, and point to the fact that the mortal combat researches confirm Enkidu Gilgamesh Western a (also Semite) had and which contains
took place in Amurru (seebelow). with Humbaba, It has been surmised for some an years that Gilgamesh was early The early dynastic list,above referred to, proves king of Erech. Animalium 12: this conclusively. Aelian in a fable (De Natura
21)
gives the
He was supposed cf. Semak-Jau14 of the Old Testament. to be the son of a priest of Kullab, a part of Erech, and Ninis later deified. Unfortunately the name Nin-Sun Sun, who was is correctly given by in a Sumerian form, but if her father's name Aelian, she doubtless also bore reproduced by this ideogram. It was
a
West
Semitic
name,
which
was
some
was
recognized years ago that the epic in the Assyrian Naturally it is not impossible that composite character.
14
of
of
That
is liT30D;
"
Vm.
AMOKITES
IN
BABYLONIA.
N""
into the epic were the tales embodied origin, although of Sumerian to be the case, as at the present time this cannot be determined there is nothing in the epic to show that it was originally Sumerian. True,
there
are
few
names
like Gilgamesh,
to be written
En-ki-du,
Ubara-Tutu,
alone is not
in Sumerian;
criterion,
as
mentioned 'double'
Sumerians.
The
name
of Gilgamesh namely,
's
been read
as
if Semitic, but
dEa(En-Ki)-bani{Dii) and
dEa-tabu(Dug) ;
more recently scholars have been inclined to consider the name dE"i-ki-du. This reading has been influenced by the Sumerian,
word
en-gi-du, which
occurs
are, was
however,
of the Erechian
an
been
fifteen hundred
are now
several phases by the The former, as shown the question under discussion. of ably colophon, is the second tablet of the series, and the latter presumthe third.10
Collections, throws
writing is dEn-Ki-Dug,
The
which must have been culty, This offers no diffiread dEn-l;i-du, in view of the other readings. In in Sumerian. the apocopation as of a final g is common is written dEn-Ki-Du the late Ninevite version the name which
or
in the Yale Ea
and
Pennsylvania
tablets
is good",
means
"En-Ki,
or
Ea,
is the builder."
was
a
Both and
are
common
name
formations.
If the hero
Sumerian
bore
Sumerian
15
See CT
18, 30
10
3R
was an
1 p. 126 ; and Amurru p. 81. instrumental in the Pennsylvania tablet being purchased, it in OLZ, 1914, col. i. Langdon advanced notice of
;
also UMBS
IV
X 3. The subsequently published the text and a translation of it UMBS Yale tablet, as well as a translation of the Pennsylvania, will shortly be by Jastrow Old Babylonian Version published and Clay, in An of the Gilgamesh Epic.
86
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
name,
we were
have handed down to us a peculiar mixunquestionably ture If, on the other hand, different meanings. of elements with that he was assume a Semite, and lived at a time when names
we
ideograms, written with Sumerian and that later, perhaps following dark period of literary inactivity, the legend was a were revived when the original meaning and reading of the name lost sight of, we how this confusion took place. can understand
There
are reasons
(or Ea-tabu)
In
was
not only a Semite but that he came Enkidu The country whence
Amurru.
was
mountainous.
occurs
the
Pennsylvania The
"Some
one,
kidu. Enconcerning says: mother of Gilgarnesh, in speaking of Enkidu, in the plain, and 0 Gilgamesh, who like thee is born
passage
' ' In the Yale tablet this passage reared him, etc. "Enkidu occurs: opened his mouth and spake to Gilgamesh, 'Know, my friend, in the mountain when I moved about with the cattle to a distance of one double mile of the territory of the forest, ' ' I penetrated into its interior to Huwawa, Several passages etc.
the mountain
hath
that Enkidu
came
from
the mountains.
from
beheld
home
thee
was
in
dream."
Again,
The the mountains, who with gazelles ate herbs, etc." fragments of the Ninevite recension which King published (PSBA is in 1914, 64 ff.), which Gilgamesh, who was apparently wounded,
's guidance through the cedar advised to entrust himself to Enkidu forest, read: "Let Enkidu He knows the path go before thee. through the cedar forest. He is full of battle, he shows fight. Let
Enkidu
and other passages show district,which contained cedar forests. It is interesting to note that Dr. William of the art as and Enkidu
memory
' '
safe.
a
These
mountainous
but in
studies by the seal cylinders depicting Gilgamesh to believe that the myth the led him preserved its origin, not in the low swamps of Babylonia, displayed
forests
Ward's
(SealCylinders,
62 ff., 414). He
in the early cylinders fights a bison, an formidable than the lion, but and more
buffalo of their
VHI.
AMORITES
IN
BABYLONIA.
^7
he also noted, always retained the horns region. Enkidu, In one cylinder (No. 177) containing the Gilgamesh of the bison. on a mounmotif, Ward tain. called attention to a cypress tree growing The art therefore as well as the passages above quoted
own
had
come
district. mountainous be mentioned also that in the art of is though tall in stature, as not
from
a
This is admirably of Gilgamesh. terra cotta relief found in the Yale Babylonian it p. 73). This would make and Archaeology duplicate
a
scarcely probable that one was Moreover, they both have merian.
which
art.
and the other a Subeards, curly hair, and wear in Babylonian is characteristic of the Semites as portrayed
Semite
made of the long journey that Gilgamesh and Enkidu the stronghold of IJumbaba, to the cedar forest, which surrounded The reason has been supposed by most scholars to refer to Elam.
The
story
for this view has not been that cedar forests existed in that region, but because the name
are
known
to have
identified with the Elamite god Rumba Humman, JJmman, Umba, Amba, etc.). This spite of the fact that the name Hubaba, only slightly resembles for in every instance known the
done
in
of the former doubled, while the latter is not. the final consonant is Amorite, The name IJumbaba unquestionably This
by the form is definitely shown on a name of lection. Coltablet belonging to the Gilgamesh epic in the Yale Babylonian In the Amorite Syllabary published by Chiera, there is
and the
not
This name written Hu-ira-ica (HU-PI-PI). in an tablets.16 And it also occurs the Ur Dynasty
a
name
occurs
omen,
also in following
Hu-um-ba-ba (CT 28 6: 3-4). In the Yale mentions in is written Hu-wa-wa, tablet the name the same as This as well as other reasons it perthe Amorite Syllabary. make fectly
one
which Gilgamesh
reasonable
16
to conclude
147
are
those
8
BE
3 11:12;
5, HLC
28, 21
etc.
88
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AM0RITES.
district, which
that the
as
has
name
frequently is the
been
as
also prove
same
suggested;17 Kombabos
of Queen Stratonike in the legend concerning the construction of the sanctuary at Hierhas Humbaba name apolis (Lucan De dea Syria), with which
(Koft8a/?o";),appears who
the guardian
frequently been compared. Moreover, Hobab,18 the also in the Old Testament Judg. 4: 11, In the
the
son
etc.).
the
name
of birth to a Huwawa, the king and the omens a women read : gives leave the city. If a sheep gives birth to a lion with his sons will the prince will be without a rival, and will a face of a Huwawa, In the epic the name destroy the land of the enemy."20 of this
"
omens,
Huwawa
suggests
monster.1"
Two
If
Amorite
despot,
"whose
deluge, whose breath is death," Gilgamesh for deity, the same the name as
roar
is
Enkidu.
certain that the cedar forests of Humbaba and this is the region whence Enkidu came, This Amorite. that the latter also was an
form of be littlequestion that the Sumerian his name, as above, represented a Semitic name, which may have been Ea-tob. This would very reasonable, especially if appear
being true, there the contention
Semitic god should of Chiera that Ea is a West the reading Ba'al-tob Jastrow would now prove correct. propose as the Semitic original of the name "lord of land" ; that is,En-Ki represents the West Semitic Ba' al.
As
ments elestated, the epic is not only Semitic, but there are many Semites, such as the Western which show connections with
the gods Girra, Urra, Adad, Irnini, Antu, etc., and personal names Gilgamesh, who etc. Whether such as Atrahasis, Buzur- Amurru,
17
Gressinan,
Das
Gilgamesh-Epos,
p. Ill, f. 1 ; Poebel
UMBS
IV
1, p.
224 ; and Jastrow, Sacred Books and Early Literature, 18 = = = Hombaba Hobbaba Hobaba. Eubaba
19
21
:
20
it occurs CT 28, 3 : 17, 4 : 89, 6 : 3-4, 14 : 12, are where 28. I am indebted to Professor Jastrow for these references. In the passage CT 28, 6 : 3-4, both the early and late forms of the name The
passages
appear.
VIII.
AMOKITES
IN
BABYLONIA.
89
was
mined. to be deternot, remains If he were, the question arises, what was his western name ? In Amurru, p. 79, the endeavor was made to show that the name
a
usurper,
was
from
the West,
or
which
"the axe of Mash" contracted into Gilgamesh means however, (see also MI p. 3 n.). Such a name, would scarcely be for a child. How is it to be explained ? It is possible appropriate to let the following ; but offer several suffice.
became
conjectures
Piligor originally have been Bilga-Mash tions Such formaMash, and meant "the offshoot of the god Mash." are (seethe discussion on Peleg, very common and meanings In later years, after he had become the legendary hero, The
hero's
name
may
above).
to
whom
as
were
others,
attributed the exploits of Enkidu, and perhaps is shown from the Pennsylvania tablet,21 his name was
interpreted
of It is only necessary to read the epic to see and others. how frequently the axe is it doubtless (or spear)22 mentioned; In consequence, played an important role as his weapon. when in Abram
to writing it was essary merely neccommitted Still another, to place the determinative gis before Bilga. might be, that it and perhaps more simple explanation of the name Unfortunately the signifimeans "Gish is an offshoot of Mash." cance
justas
in accordance with the reputation is done in the Old Testament in the case
he
was
of Gish which
figures
so
an
names,
offers
Moreover, which
these
are
are
The
us
Mari,
and
Patesi-gal
of Enlil, which
means
king of
suzerain
21
See Jastrow
Epic.
in the forthcoming
An
Old
Babylonian
Version
of
the
Gilgamesh
22
held
by
two
Enkidu,
see
23
Art
and
the
On
Mash,
see
also Chapter
XVII.
90
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
over see
the land.
His
inscription belongs X.
to
very
early period;
further Chapter A
in the very early dynasties are number of the rulers' names Amorite ; for example, I-su-il of the Opis dynasty, El-muti of the Kish. Doubtless whose ancestors Lagash, records Amorite city Mari defeated ; see
as
Semites all the rulers of these two dynasties were Eannatum, had come from Amurru. patesi of in one his inscriptions the coalition of the of
mentioned,
on
with Kish and Opis against him, which he Lugal-zaggisi, the son of Ukush, further Chapter X. The tradition to be a Semite. is considered by some
origin is that he was the bank of the Euphrates." Barahsu, born The
an
Sargon's
in
"Azupiranu
conqueror
name.
great
Elam
and
Uru-mush,
bears
Amorite
dynasty They
contains
are compounded
Mir-Shar, I-lu-Me-ir, of Adda, Mir-Dadu, are Ba'al, Malik, etc. Contracts of this era language being generally the known, but unfortunately Sumerian are in which they appear, most of the names written with Sumerian impossible to determine it in most cases ideograms, which make
with the names Bar-ra, perhaps ment, Such a docuSemitic names. or whether they represent Sumerian however, as the Obelisk, which is written in Semitic, gives lived in the land. Amorites for believing that many reasons Recently
Scheil published a cylinder seal belonging to the period dynasty, which bears the name of the firstkings of the Kish-Akkad son of Is-re-il, of Rish-Zuni, and which he equates with the Hebrew Israel. name the idea that the More than a decade ago the writer advanced
of of the Nisin dynasty seemed to show that many rulers' names The name the founder, Amorites them were (JAOS 1907, p. 8). of deity, namely, namely, Isbi-Urra, also another containing the same Dagan with the names others compounded Recently Barton published and Ishtar, pointed to this conclusion. an oracle which shows that Ishbi-Urra, the founder of the dynasty, Urra-imitti,
as
well
as
came
from
Mari
on
the Euphrates
were
(MB I 9:
Semitic.
4,
22),thus
As
confirming
West
translation
of Eusebius
VIII.
AMOKITES
IN
BABYLONIA.
91
Amorite rulers of this period ' ' Median. A date formula of Libit-Ishtar of the Nisin dynasty
' '
{Mar), instead
a
of
the
usual
tablet belonging
seems
to the reign
an
to point to
of interruption UR-In-
of the dynasty
urta.24
of Ishbi-Urra
by
another
Amorite
named
founded time as about the same which was the Nisin dynasty (see MI p. 41),was also Amorite, as is shown by the names of the rulers. The Larsa dynastic tablet recently in the Yale Babylonian discovered in the ruins of that city, and now The Larsa
dynasty,
Collection, reads
21
years
Xa-ap-la-nv.-um E-mi-su
28 years
35
years
Sa-mu-um
Za-ba-a-a
9 years
Ghi-un-gu-nu-um
A-bi-sa^ri-e Su-mn-ilu
Nu-ur-dImm"
r
7(?)
years
dSin-i-din-nam
8ili-(li)-dImmer
WaraddBi-im-
12 years 61 years
12(?)
years
dHa-am-mu-ra-bi
king
This
date
formula
(CT
4. 22)
sa
has
discussion. "The
read drove out Libit-Ishtar" (OLZ 1907, 109 in which the Amurru year drove ff.). Meissuer translated it: "The year in which the city Amuruni it, "The Libit-Ishtar" 109 ff.). Ungnad translated {ibid. out year when Lipit-Ishtar, the
Ranke
it: Mu
been
Amorite,
was
banished."
's successor
From did
not
the
Ur-Nisin
to
dynastic
the ruling overthrew
belong
means
who
dislodged
upon
by IIE-Inurta, who
family
the throne
was an
maintain
than
that UR-Inurta
retook the city and established to {SA p. 315). It is not unreasonable from another quarter Amorite, perhaps
that whence
of the dynasty,
came.
92
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOKITES.
Thureau-Dangin
in
recent
number
of the Revue
d'Assyriologie
in the Louvre, has published an important rectangular prism, now have duplicated almost completely the which, if perfect, would ning time the formulae for all the years beginabove, giving at the same with Gungunu. of years The above list fortunately from which are broken away supplies the names of the rulers with reigned from Abi-sare to Warad-Sin.25 gives the number the Louvre prism, and it the number of years they
,
interesting observations are possible in connection with had no We these dynastic lists and what has been said above.
Some
knowledge
of the firstfour reigns, and also of others in the listfrom source any records, prior to the discovery of these important Naplanum 35, and 28, Samum ruled 21 years, Emisu although Zabaia 9. These names, Amorite. as well as others that follow, are
fore, time they ruled, namely, almost a century in length, is, thereone above. of those dark periods of inactivity, mentioned Even the date formulae apparently were the Louvre unknown when The
inscribed, for they begin with the reign of Gungunu. prism was in the date formulae of the contracts that This king is mentioned have thus far been published ; and he is also the firstof the dynasty
who
inscriptions. Enannatum, in other known a son chief priest at the city of Ur, of Nisin, who was of Ishme-Dagan inscribed clay cones, in which he records the has handed down tion rebuilding of the temple of the sun-god at Larsa for the preservaking of Ur (8A his own life and that of Gungunu, the of is mentioned
310
f.).
Larsa
orates ruler, in a brick inscription, in which he commemthe building of a great wall at Larsa, calls himself king of The cones as show that he well as of Sumer and Akkad.
This
same on
inscription the
reverse,
in restoring the figures on the obverse, that side is broken away. on the obverse also have suffered, yet it can Unfortunately the numbers on the be restored nearly completely remained with the aid of what important
reverse.
For
BA XV
Dangin 4, part
date
formulae
see
Thureau-
of
the Larsa
Dynasty
(YOR
1).
VIII.
AMORITES
IN
BABYLONIA.
93
Since the first four rulers of this dynasty have left no traces of their rule, except in the dynastic tablet and prism, perhaps they from Larsa, somewhere the far removed on thrones sat on Euphrates.
shows It has fact that their reigns were that they were not feeble rulers. The been
not of short duration
held for many that there was years by Hilprecht the part of Elam at this time, on active hostility against Babylonia UR-Inurta (dXin-IB) usurped the throne of Nisin. But when
there is time.
no
an
Elamite
invasion
at this
It is,however,
which
highly probable that the evidences of vandalism Xippur, had observed beneath who excavated
in the temple the pavement were caused by the of UR-Inurta Amorites, the dynasty was established or possibly either when displaced those who had preceded when a fresh invasion of Amorites Amorite, as Gungunu was an them. of the Larsa Dynasty His reign synchronizes with Syllabary shows. It is not impossible that both were the long one of UR-Inurta. fresh influx of Amorites. Decades a usurpers and represented lowed follater the Elamites did appear on the scene, when Warad-Sin, the Amorite Name
by Rim-Sin,
at Larsa,
sons
to a close. and brought The dynasty of Babylon, usually known the First Dynasty, as 's began to rule shortly after the close of Gungunu reign (MI p. 41). The kings of this dynasty, as mentioned above (Chapter II) were
also Amorite. Not only is the nomenclature of this period full of Amorite but many bearing Semitic Babylonian devotees names, names were
of Amorite deities, as is shown by the impressions of the seals the tablets. This would imply that many names of the Amorite
were
on
very
likely Babylonized,
a
which
very
much is especially significant is the large shows. what El-Uru, Adad, Nergal and other the devotees of Amurru, number of Amorite gods, as indicated by the seals, not only from one site,but from all whence tablets have come, Babylon, Sippar, Larsa, etc. From the seal impressions on recently published texts coming from Larsa, it would almost
seem as
is understandable, as in many This would indicate slight change. than the nomenmore numerous clature
was
9-4
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
Uru
or
Amurru.
Even
Rim-Sin,
the Elamite,
has handed
down
he acknowledges doing obeisance to El-Uru a votive tablet in which the god of the Amorites, in dedicating a votive inscription to him Collection, No. 7232). In short, the land was (Yale Babylonian
filledwith Amorites. Ishki-Bal and others in the Sea-land dynasty may also The name does not seem to have prove to be Amorite ; but thereafter Amurru in the affairs of Babylonia, except as a figured very prominently field for gathering tribute. Doubtless, the brief Elamitic suzerainty the West, followed by that of Babylon, was responsible of for the disorganization which ensued.
IX
EARLY
The
BABYLONIANS
IN
AMURRU
kings which show contact records of Babylonian and Assyrian for the reconstruction are naturally important with Amurru These show us that already in the of the history of that land. history the great rulers of period of Babylonian earliest known that land from what
were
preying
upon
the Amorites.
has preceded and what especially from the middle Mesopotamian in such undertakings. turn Etana,
As
their
the twelfth king of Kish, as referred to in the last chapter, is said to have subdued lands. This expression, (ruled)all is found in a tablet written in the time of the Nisin dynasty, which
included. It were of the West seems reasonable, therefore, to look upon Etana as the first known into contact with Amurru. is true as The same ruler who came tablets, dealing with events in the regards the two fragmentary
doubtless
meant
time of Shar-banda and Dumu-Zi, which refer to wars against Elam in the west. below, Halma Also the conflict above, and Tidnum has been Enkidu with Humbaba and his companion of Gilgamesh
noted.
is perhaps the earliest Amorite known by name, except the legendary antediluvian rulers handed down by Berossus. Lugal-zaggisi, king of Erech, informs us that he conquered the "from
Humbaba
lands
sea,
the
sea,
known
to the the lower, the Tigris and Euphrates the Mediterranean)." For years it has been
subdued the land of the Amorites, and In an inscription recently published (UMBS the Syrian coast. on IV 1, 177 b),which gives legends from monuments in Nippur, seen
the god, presumably Enlil, is credited with having given unto Sargon "the upper land Mari, Iarmuti, and Ibla even unto the Cedar ' ' Forest and the Silver mountains. The city or kingdom of Mari the Euphrates on was (seeChapter X ) ; Iarmuti, as shown by the
Amarna
letters, was
seaport
town
(95)
on
the Phoenician
coast ; and
96
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
tbe district and also by Gudea, was it would seem from the description, The cedar forests, were north of Ibla, and therefore likely refer to the cedars of in his inscriptions. district, which Gudea the Amanus mentions
by Naram-Sin
The
range, the silver mountains, it is thought, are in the Taurus same referred to on the obelisk of Shalmaneser.1 frequently quoted In the omens of Sargon there is a passage
which has been which reads: "the sea of the West he crossed," But a chronicle more interpreted as meaning the Mediterranean. recently published by King proves that the eastern sea is meant. in the East he crossed, and in the sea reads: "The eleventh year the country of the West in its full extent his hand (Chron.II, p. 4). The above inscriptions taken from his subdued" monuments show the extent of the West land which he conquered. The
passage
(Y8 XII, 193), clay tablet recently discovered at Amarna the translation of which was published by Sayce (PSBA 1915, 227 's ff.), successful invasion of a distant contains a legend of Sargon
A
country
Sayce
Minor.
Amarna
separated by a barrier of trackless forests and mountains. in the Hittite region in eastern Asia holds that this was
The
tablet he
thinks belonged
belong.
we
learn
conquered Gudea
Shargani-Sharri
architect informs us of his extensive building operations, and how he secured his materials from mountains From in Amurru, Arabia, and the country north of Amurru. From he brought Amanus Mount wood. cedars, and urkarinu his statue in the mountain of Ibla, he brought the mountains and plane trees. From Basalla (perhaps Mt. Bazara mentioned
Ursu
Amurru,
he brought
stones, out
Ohnstead
of which
From
Mad
en
here referred to (AJSL 33, 311). This place has been identified with Mt. 124. Cf. Thureau-Dangin BTC Buzera near in Ashur-nasir-pal, III 9 ff.and the modern Bisuru, mentioned Circesium. If this is correct, it would indicate that in this period this part
are
2
of the land
was
included
in Amurru.
IX.
EARLY
BABYLONIANS
IX
AMTTBRTJ.
'""'
the mountain
Tidanu
he
brought
Kagalad,
From
mountain
(Damascus),
he brought
wood; and gold in Gubin, he Hahu. Prom a mountain of from Madga huluppu wood; tain asphalt, and from the mounsecured From Barshib, nalua stone. the lands of the lower country by
the Persian
usu
Sea, Gulf to the upper countiy of the Mediterranean as well as other places, he transported materials for his building In the absence of any military records of operations and statues. in Gudea, we know only what the contributions of these lands were
building materials. Dungi in his year dates commemorates ent the devastation of differ(probably Gomorrah), Ki-Mash cities in the west, as Humurti (Damascus), etc. Unfortunately, many of the cities which Dungi be identified. Together
with the other rulers of followed, namely, Amar-Sin, Gimil-Sin, and IbiSin, he used the title "king of the four quarters of the world," included Amurru. On the seal impression which it is understood
cannot conquered the dynasty who
name
found
on
Cappadocian for
tablet, see
Chapter
time.
Kudur-Mabug,
used the titleAd-da k"rMarElam held sway in Palestine down in the fourteenth
ter Chap-
Chedorlaomer
It would seem about the time
had
Warad-Sin succession of short reigns the sons of Kudur-Mabug, and Rim-Sin, were placed on the throne of Larsa. Hammurabi in conquering Elam in his thirty-firstyear, and Mari in his thirty-fifth year, acquired the title to Amurru (see Chapter
X). In a stele found at Diarbekr in Southern Armenia {L1H I Whether 66) he calls himself "King at this time of Amurru."
Amurru included this part of the Near East
cannot
at present
be
detennined.
Hammurabi's
Samsu-iluna, in the date formula and successor, for his thirty-sixth year, refers to the great mountains of
son
98
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
Amurru
(CT
2, 27
18). Only
one
same
dynasty,
Ammi-ditana,
term
which
lowed, In the Cassite period, which folis not understood. is unknown, except the bringing back contact with Amurru from Hani of the images of Marduk and Sarpanitum. Contact on the part of the kings of Babylonia with Amurru
seems
invasions reigns. When with highly prosperous Elam and Subartu took place, it was or conquests of Amurru, These strong and vigorous. usually at a time when Babylonia was were dence. much in eviperiods when art nourished, and the scribe was to be the Monumental records or victory steles seemed to the all the lands, or the lands from the lower sea order. When conquered, including Elam, the ruler used the title, upper, were
to synchronize
The title of the four quarters of the world." enjoyed by quently following such, is freor kings in reigns immediately preceding "king of Sinner and Akkad," simply the which embraced
"king
northern and southern part of Babylonia. Between these periods which offer evidence of high water marks times, there are dark periods regarded as prosperous of what were Even temple the civilization was at a low ebb. apparently when records in these periods evidences that there were do not
seem
to have
been kept;
in fact,
of these eras are almost scribes in some naturally this could scarcely have completely wanting, though Prior to the time of Lugal-zaggisi, and the period been the case. following the reign of Shargani-Sharri, there are great gaps in the history.
the overthrow of the Ur Dynasty, when Amoa apparently rites began to reign in different centres, there was chaotic state of affairs for nearly a century, as the almost complete In the firsthalf of the Cassite rule, as absence of records shows.
Following
far
as
is known
at present,
again such a lull. The same portion of the period when the Assyrians there
was
As
as
tion of Babylonia throw no light on the queslow tide of civilization in cause of the did not record what led to the overThe conqueror throw
not in a position to flaunt them. people the fact that he had subjugated
He
was
IS.
EARLY
BABYLONIANS
IN
AMUEBU.
99
of foreigners upon the thrones must explain for us The kings who sat on the thrones being Amorites, what happened. Elamites, Gutians, Cassites, etc., we can only infer that the tables
The
presence
had
are
been
turned
being
upon
the Babylonians.
We
often dependent, for what we know of them, upon the effort of the later scribe who handed down to us dynastic lists; but many of these are unfortunately so fragmentary, especially for the early
as to the length of many periods, that we are stillin the dark even An occasional historical reference as of these eras of depression. be found in later periods, as for example, to what occurred may
brought chronicle that Agum-kakrime Hani from back to Babylon the cult-images and of Marduk Sarpanitum, and installed them in their shrines ; or Ashurbanipal, in recording his defeat of Elam, celebrates his return of the statue
we are
informed
in
to her shrine in Erech, which he informs us was of Nana carried Elam by Kudur-Nahundi, but additional 1635 years earlier, off to invasions is wanting. knowledge of the
the records of the powers able to delve among whose the throne of Babylonia, we representatives sat upon perhaps would know more about the state of affairs that led to the overthrow
we were
If
of the rule. The resurrection of Elam's royal records, those Guti, Shubartu, etc.,will enable us to fill of Amurru, up some of the They, doubtless, will also gaps in the early history of Babylonia. Babylonia these countries held sway over at times of A country like which at present we have no intimation whatever. Amurru, overrun times throughout which was and plundered many
show the millenniums how
period,
was
of its history, certainly, especially in the early to strike back. The divination texts strong enough
would alone be sufficientto show that the fear and dread of this being done were before the peoples of Babylonia. It is only ever to examine these texts to ascertain how deeply seated necessary this fear. Since the Amorites were was quiescent after 2000 B. C,
we
from
an
already possess, question but that the West occurred repeatedly ; and it is certainly reasonable infer that when fuller dynastic records have been
more
recovered
and
more
evident.
UR
THE
CAPITAL
OF
AMURRU
to look upon the political life of Ainurru, It has been customary less devoid of cohesion or especially of the early period, as more is generally regarded as made up of The fact is,Amurru or unity. petty princedoms of semi-enlightened people, or tribes of a semi-
This conception has been favorable for the character. ' development theories, and for the view that of the pan-Babylonists for the early period all Semites are Arabs ; but this is erroneous, barbarous
The country embraced the late, and must be abandoned. such peoples who had a low order of culture, especially in certain Palestine, which, with its varied geographregions, as for example ical being more a home or less isolated, was lithic of neocharacter and
as
well
as
man
as
Nevertheless
well as there
harbor
are
for representatives of many nations. for believing that even reasons abundant regards proceed that it to that civilization comparable
;
this region had its large quota of civilized people the country as a as we whole, it will be shown
politically and enjoyed,
and
as
otherwise,
Amorite
we
upon the political situation in the postafter 2000 B. C.) by contemporaneous records,
III of Thutmose with the earliest in this post-Amorite knowledge of political affairs in Amurru is either the head of an At this time, the king of Kadesh period. alliance of Amorites which included Palestine, or he is suzerain this region Ashirta, who was
over
greater (1501-1447B.
of
The
inscriptions
period, Abdinon as an recognized by Egypt overlord of the LebaAmorites, and Aziru his son, created with the assistance of the Hittites an Amorite kingdom edge (seeChapter XII). We have knowlAmorites. and Sihon, kings of the East Jordan A few centuries later the Hebrews under Saul aspired to found a kingdom; and Solomon which under David embraced, with the
(100)
(seeChapter XIV).
In the Amarna
also of Og
X.
UR
THE
CAPITAL
OF
AMURRU.
101
exception of Phoenicia
reaching kingdom
we
know
the territory coastal cities, and the Lebanon There was Euphrates. unto the upper also an Aramaean its capital. In the Assyrian as period with Damascus In the Mesopotamian or coalitions. of great alliances
known. In short, whenever the veil is are region, other kingdoms lifted and we obtain a glimpse of political affairs, we learn of the existence of kingdoms, small and large, or of aspirations to found such kingdoms.
in "Western Amurru that is political ascendancy in post-Amorite before the known times was that of Jerusalem lonia. kingdom divided and fell a prey to Assyria and later to Babywas The
greatest
Without
we
the indigenous
record that
we
have
founded
of David absolutely nothing of the kingdom Assyria, and Babylonia, at the time when their kingdom, were comparatively weak,1 and
at home,
absorbed with their own problems to develop their kingdom. the Hebrews
which
were
permitted
many such in the history of Babylonia, especially in the earlier millenniums, periods kings could have the length and when powerful ruled
There
breadth
shall learn as little in the even annals when all have been brought to light, as have in later times of Solomon Early Egypt we and David. also had its periods of decline, for which it is not at all improbable that
;
of Aniurru of Babylonia,
and
of whom
we
some
mighty
on
Amorite
which
In short, a great responsible. could have existed in the very records in Egypt and Babylonia
were
perhaps of a the study of the personal names, that it can be ascertained that the due to the encroachments cause of the decline was powerof some ful It would be reasonable to infer, having alone the neighbor. knowledge
1
produced
of
these
kingdoms,
alliances, and
coalitions, that
the basis of 1 Kgs. 9 : 16, that Solomon was evidently an Egyptian vassal, who possibly received in marriage a daughter of the Pharaoh, and whose territory his Egyptian suzerain extended by the thinks,
on
Breasted, however,
gift of Gezer. which the Canaanites had burned and presented to Solomon.
not
conquered, HE p. 529.
but which
he captured,
102
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
so favorable for an which land was advanced civilization, to Elam and Babylon, played prior to the time that it succumbed important role among its neighbors. But there is no need to an
Amurru,
that it is
like every other kingdom had a centre from In searching for this imperial city it seems which it was governed. In the firstplace that certain considerations must be kept in mind. it would seem name reasonable to look for a city that bore the same
as
land Amurru
the kingdom,
having
etc.
Tilla, Babylon,
in mind It would
early era for the land in the early periods. The city doubtless position rather centrally located to have maintained its lonia this wide area, over and also to have influenced Babyvery
such lands as Ashur, Mash, Akkad, that the city should have appear Martu=Amurru to account for the name
extensively.
surrounding position, must have practically passed known about it in the late centuries. home
all the
Such
having such
a
conquered
prominent out of existence, for littleis The city probably was the Amar,
of the god
whose
name
was
who With the Babylonians. nomenclature of the latter part of the third millennium
upon
El-Ur
Uru,
Babylonia
waned, Amorite
rare
practically ceased; the city's religion must have for subsequent to the time of the First Dynasty of Babylon,
names
compounded
with Mer,
Mar,
Amurru
or
Uru
are
to earlier periods ; in fact some in comparison of the writings totally disappear in personal names, although they are of the name in the late period in the syllabaries. preserved
which is written in Aramaic writer has shown that Amurru, is home, Ur Uru pltf). identical with the name of Abraham's Its position in history, like of the Chaldees, i. e. Ur plN) that of the kingdom was practically lost sight of. So of Amurru, The
.-
littlewas
2
known
in Babylon
Uru
a
in Talmudic
See Amurru
as
Amurru
or
same as
Ur, the writer proposed the identification of the site of the city ; this view is now abandoned.
X.
ITR
THE
CAPITAL
OF
AMURRU.
103
some
later Arabian
as
writers
now
10)
the city.
It
that the centre sought for as the imperial is the place known as Ur of the Chaldees.
Amurru,
Recently
Olmstead
as
Henry view,
appears
Rawlinson namely
on
that the
sea
of the
coast
city
Amurru
opposite
this the capital, sees the name of Eustaalso in the river Marathias 38 249). 'Amrit thias, ad Dionys. 914, and in the modern (JAGS in this formed by Abdi-Ashirta Letters the kingdom In the Amarna
The Boghaz-koi archival tablets, as well region is called Amurru. inscriptions of this period, also use the old name as the Egyptian have Probably Marathias the name and 'Amrit of the empire.
come
down
from
this period.
Ramses
III (1198-1167) may to have been confined to this district ; and it is perAmurru seems fectly in fact, to look for the old capital in this region; natural the present writer has heretofore investigations, however, recent region
inclined toward
seem
this view.
More
of the old capital which gave cities in references to the Mediterranean since we have many the early inscriptions of Babylonia (see Chapters IX and Egypt and XIV), but not the slightest evidence of the city in question in the period when the empire B. C. Such millenniums
to point elsewhere as the its name, the land cially and espe-
existed, namely, in the third and fourth is always an argument precarious, but to the writer that it nevertheless until evidence is found it appears is reasonable to look elsewhere, in the light of other facts, for the powerful ancient and important city which was enough to rule the land from The the Mediterranean
to Babylonia.
in the Mesopotamian earliest kingdom region of which at have knowledge is that of Mari Meri, along the or present we Euphrates. The city played an important role in the early history of Babylonia, and very probably of the entire Xorth Semitic world.
3
Rawlinson
says:
or
Acre
is
often
aPXata
is of course Mapatfo? substituted Maratha which QoivIkw' Lib. 16: 518." (JRAS OS 12, 430 n. 1.
Strabo
'roAw
104
THE
EMPIRE
OP
THE
AMORITES.
reference to the city is on a votive statuette earliest known in the British Museum written in archaic script, which reads as " king of Mari, great patesi of Enlil, follows : -uni-Shamash, to Shamash presented as a gift" (CT 5, 2). The title patesiat suzerain over gal dEnlil shows that this early king of Mari was The
. . . ...
It seems to the writer that this scarcely least part of Babylonia. in that it is the earliest noticed text is of the greatest importance known to one inscription of an Amorite, and refers unquestionably
in Amurru the dominant was power of those early periods when The style of the sculpture, which is archaic, points to Babylonia. the earliest age, probably as early as the statue found by Banks (King SA 97). The character of the writing also at Bismaya points to
a
very
a
early age.
but
Eannatum, Mari VI:
was
photograph
to its provenance,
published
{ibid. 102). p.
early patesi of Lagash, informs us that in his day (Opis) against him (VB I 22, allied with Kish and Kesh The coalition of these cities with Mari is interesting in
an
22).
Eannatum Semitic centres. because they are this connection defeat to the confederacy a crushing claims to have administered led by Zuzu of Kesh, at the Antasurra of Ningirsu, and to have them to their own pursued city. He does not mention, however,
He
informs
probably Enlil, "gave Ibla as far as the cedar forest and the silver mountains" (UMBS IV 7, 179 f ) In an oracle of Ishbi-Urra, as noted in Chapter VIII,
. .
refers to the capture is missing, deity whose name that some us unto him the upper land, Mari, Iarmuti and
dynasty,
Dynasty, that king is twice called "the of the Msin ' ' We have also seen that not only the Nisin rulers man of Mari. but those of the contemporaneous dynasties, bear Amorite names, Larsa and Babylon; namely which, considered in connection with the founder the fact that the nomenclature at this time is filledwith Amorite names, show great influence from this quarter (seeChapter VIII).
To this period very probably belongs a votive tablet, now in the Louvre, which had been inscribed by a king whose name has also unfortunately son of Ja-ahbeen
. . .
injured. It
king
reads
as
follows
"Zi-i[m-.
. . .
of Mari, and
the country
who
built
.]
X.
UK
THE
CAPITAL
OF
AMURRU.
105
brought. on the bank of the ., the bit kt-ri-b[i] ., in Tirq[a], the beloved of the Euphrates], " 11 134 ff.). The script, which is (See Herzfeld RA god that of the Ur Dynasty or we earlier, and the knowledge possess of
. .
the temple
.,
who
from
of Mari and the collapse of its political position (see below),make it highly probable that it belongs to a period not later than the B. C. Moreover, learn from we middle of the third millennium the inscription the fragmentary and Jah-. being
Mari,
name
of
Mari
king, Zim-.
that
.
of
his
.,
who,
we
true,
also only partially it is reasonable to assume was know fragmentary names the
. .
father,
preserved, also
a
the earliest being ,-um-Shamash. very who was rite kings, we know of Humbaba district in the time of Gilgamesh the Lebanon
king in
and an early patesi of Ki-Mash Hunnini. To these should be added the names of the four local Amorite kings mentioned in the fourteenth chapter of Genesis; but these ruled about the time the empire was dissolved, or even
later.
local city-rulers of Western Amurru. In the latter part of the third millennium Elam entered help of its vassals, conquered Western arena, and with the
were
They
the the
us
Amorite how
The
fourteenth
chapter
era,
(Amraphel)
the
Amorite
Sea.
Mari
became Adda of Elam Martu "Suzerain (YB 210, 6:4). It is not unlikely of Amurru" date for Hammurabi's tenth year refers to that the fragmentary
up, when
the west side of the Jordan and the Dead improbable that this is the time the hegemony of the king
for
in it the been
population
away.
had
destroyed
the walls of Mari and which Hammurabi after having destroyed Malgu, As this event at the command etc. of Anu and Enlil," followed closely upon his contest for supremacy it with Elam, would
status.
seem
Mari
had
attempted
to regain
its former
doubtless
efforts
on
of Hammurabi,
106
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
throw
giver In his Code the lawcelebrated in the date formula. the settlements who subdued speaks of himself as the one
was
"the warrior of Dagan, his creator, who protected ' ' The Code probably refers the people of Marl and Tutul. Mari to a time subsequent to the destruction of the city's walls. in Western thereafter ceased to be an important political power
along
the Euphrates,
Asia. inscriptions to Mari subsequent references in the Babylonian In known to the writer. to the ascendancy are of Babylon ernor calls himself govrelief of the later period, Shamash-resh-usur
Only
two
of Suhi
is mentioned 2r: 20). In brief, the city Mari ceased to be a factor in the political Asia after the time of Hammurabi. Western affairs of
(Weissbach Miscln. 9 f.) and the city ; and Mari being in proximity to Suhi (CT 4, in a document as
Mari
must
be recognized
as
The
restored
or
temple
in Girsu, is
Mari
Mar,
there
went
forth the
Shar-Urra
Gal
(=Nergal)
names
of Ne-UrudNin-IB Marki
=
identifies Urta
with the city. The absolute identification of Mar with Mar-tw=Amu)iu=Uru the previous chapter, gives see and the other forms of this name, for identifying the city Mari as the centre we are us every reason looking
the to weld together enough powerful Semitic peoples of this region into a great nation and to give it Amurru even the name ; this it retained for millenniums, quent subse-
for, which
was
was
destroyed.
Yet, it was
in all
antediluvian mythological of the Chaldean probability the home lowed kings at the head of which stands El-'Ur (Aloros), and who Avas folby five other kings whose names also contain the city-god's Alap-'Ur name, (Amillaros),Megal-'Ur (Alaparos), Amel-'Ur
ancestral Ishbi-Urra and Imitti-Urra of the Nisin Dynasty; and of Abraham. it is highly probable that it was the home moreover of from the inscriptions, and Taking into account all that is known
Ebed-'Ur, the brother (Euedorachos), (Megaloros), and the 'Ar-data (Ardates)(seeChapter IX). This also was
perhaps
home
X.
I'R
THE
CAPITAL,
OF
AMUREU.
'""
in the identification of the the conditions that we could propose imperial centre, no city in Amnrru fulfillsthe conditions as does Mari or Merra on the Euphrates. Further St. Stephen says Ur in Mesopotamia (Acts 7: 2, 4). of the Chaldees was In this connection the question arises, when did Merra Ur or to the entire land; establish the hegemony which gave its name
it dissolved.' Naturally was and when before the time of Sargon, but whether Gilgamesh, Etana, Shar-banda or when
cannot it
as
was
Humbaba
not,
be surmised.
in turn humiliated Mari. Sargon ruled Babylonia. He captured the city and invaded the region beyond, as far as Ibla Erech Guti Dynasties, the Kish (see above). Following and
but Guti in turn by Erech. was overthrown ruled Babylonia; be determined Another dark period followed, the length of which cannot The status of Mari in the West during the at present.4
It is reasonable to infer perhaps that the established prior to the time when um-Shamash,
. . .
followed, is not known, but the fact no mention of the city is proof that made too strong for them; was yet they carried which
doms their practice of looting and gathering tribute from the kingDuring Mari beyond. the Ur Dynasty, certainly did not have a dominant kings, assumed the position, for the Ur Dynasty
on
regions,"
which
included
Amurru.
But
lost, but was not only Ur's control of Amurru Mari actually overthrew the dynasty and ruled the land, for "Ishfrom Mari" bi-Urra a man the Nisrn throne. was placed upon
the origin of Xaplanum of determining who took the throne of Larsa, his name and those of his dynasty it is to be noted that the Larsa and Xisin Moreover Amorite. are Although
we
have
no
way
Sargon
of those who have writer is one is now than generally accepted. 1911 6061) and Poebel (Comptes Rendus
The
clung to a greater antiquity for The by Seheil tablets published have restored some (VMBS V) of
the dynasties
and the Ur Dynasty, and he feels that more investigations proceed. It will probably as not be poswill become known sible to return to the former early date, but the present indications are that
a
between
Sargon
much
greater
antiquity
than
now
to
be granted.
108
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
the same time (seeChapter established at or near IX). One of those dark periods in the history of Surner and Akkad, which has left us few or no inscriptions, follows ; although the length of the reigns would not imply disintegration in this Dynasties
were
instance, but perhaps above. rather foreign control, as mentioned later established a dynasty at Babylon; Amorites a little and as As time passed the far as is known they ruled the whole land. Amorite dynasty The Babylonized. Amorite at rulers became
Larsa
became
was
subject.
overthrown Elam
by
to whom
invaded
out of the land, and a few years later holds conquered Mari, destroyed its walls, and also those of other strongthe imperial history of Mari or ; when along the Euphrates Amurru was closed.
drove
the Elamites
Uri for the (p. 103),concerning the name said in Amurru Babylonia, Akkad, that it is not improbable or northern country dominated the peoples that in some of Amurru period, when
It
was
Akkad,
the
name
geographically
land Uri of the broad Amorite to include it. The more extended
(=A"mrru)
recent
was
gations investi-
rites confirm this idea, especially since we know that the AmoIf this is not correct, Babylonia several times. conquered to that two countries, adjacent each other, and can we only assume inhabited by Semitic peoples who were closely related, had the
same name,
which
in both instances
BUR-BUR,
Western thrones
invaded
seems
Babylonia,
as some
and
sat
as
on
the
of the land, this scarcely was that the name given to Akkad
reasonable
in
it. peoples from Uri dominated Recently the writer proposed the identification of the city whose "a fortified place, is written 3Ia-riki and Marki with Merra name in his Parthian Stations by a mentioned walled city," which was
(seeMI
between Merra
Aburas
(Habur) and
5
Merra,
and twenty-two
Isidore informs
a us,
between
it
and Anatho.5
Prom
Dura
the Aburas,
was
to
fortified place,
X.
VR
THE
CAPITAL
OF
AMURRU.
in!)
The
(seebelow), was
therefore
by 'Ana
on
an
the Habur
to 'Ana.
of a low range ruins of Irzi situated on a bluff or headland of rocky hills reaching the river on its north bank, although about between the Habur and 'Ana, have been considered by midway These picturMerra. Peters,'5 Schoff,7 and others, to represent esque
from be seen ruins, which can by all travellers who have mentioned
either side of the Euphrates. El Baus 1872-3, gives the name
great
distance, have
been
says the ruins larger in extent than Cairo, and appeared in 1579 occupied a city to be the massive walls and lofty towers of a great city. This led by Xenophon Rennell8 to identify Corsote mentioned (see below)
Balbi
Ainsworth commenting with the site which he called Erzi or Irsah. 's description Balbi "the jagged and on thinks he mistook for the fragments broken masses of gypsum of an endless city"
{Euphrates Expedition
examined
L. Bell, who
the ruins, says she did not find bastioned walls, as she expected, but a number of isolated tower-tombs, round the edge of She the whole extent of the high rocky plateau. the bluff and over
saw
no
traces of houses,
nor
means
of a near-by Whether beneath the or second century of the Christian era/' tombs seen by Miss Bell belonging to recent centuries, ruins of an are ancient walled city will be found if excavations conducted,
was
it
the necropolis
of obtaining water; she thinks dates from the first town, and
to
think
'
that
as
Isidore
exactly
an
located
as
one
Merra
on
a
the
city
to
at the town
Isharah
can
locate
Giddan,
Thilabus,
6
seven
to Belesi Biblada,
six to
two
twelve
or
Nippur, Parthian
Hit.
the Euphrates
I 311 if.
Stations
by Isidore
Illustrations
Amurath
of
the Retreat 83
Charax
p. 24.
p. 103.
to Amurath
ff.
ibid. p. 387
says
the
by the Arabs, the name cliffsof Irzi were also called Al Wurdi of the city further up the stream, it may be possible that Irzi was the necropolis of that city.
110
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
on
the hour A
hasis
(AJT
p.
284);
on
hut 'Isharah
stream.
little above
Irzi
the Euphrates
(also"Wurdi). This ancient city which at present is called Werdi to site is less than half way between the Habur and 'Ana, and seems
be
was nearer
for Merra,
to 'Ana. Werdi and twenty-two who referred to it as also is thought to be the Corsote of Xenophon, by the Masca, was a large deserted city, which entirely surrounded
fifteen hours
from
the Habur
and
erxes
Cyrus passed three days on his inarch against Artaxwhere his brother (Anabasis I 5, 9). No other ancient writer is
to have
known
Doubtless in Corsote. referred to the city named 's time the in Xenophon still evidence. ruins of the ancient city were Ainsworth, however, says he saw no tion remains of a city. The posithis ; the of the city naturally makes it possible to understand is understood to be the loop canal by Xenophon Masca mentioned stood. This which encloses the bend of the river on which Werdi Since Mar and Mer frequently canal is now called Werdiyeh.10 interchange with We-ir, it is reasonable to suggest that Werdi perhaps is from site actually
appear most
Werti,
and
represents
reasonable. times again seems vator appropriate here, the spade of the excaseveral determine whether Werdi the city in can represents easily
If the is to be identified with Martu. Ur, this will the ancient city Merra or Moreover, the remark previously made
question.
10
Bell Amurath
to Amurath
p. 82.
XI
OTHER
The
MESOPOTAMIAN
KINGDOMS
tes, Euphraa district of the middle of liana embraced including the country in the region of the mouth of the Habur The discovery of a few inscriptions in this district above Merra.
kingdom
fortunately
throws
civilization. One tions Tirqa ; with which place four of the few inscripof Hana, was be definitely identified. The site of the city is supposed can found, Tell 'Isharah, where several of the tablets were to lie near
a
town
This
Ed-Der
(or Der
Ez-Z6r) and
Salihiya.
of a temple in that city (seebelow). The earliest reference to the city Tirqa is in the inscription of Zi-i[m ] king of Mari, referred to in the previous chapter, who
.
in the bit su-ri-b[i] that city. The inscription cannot be definitely dated, but the script and other considerations point to
restored
B. C, when Mari was the middle of the third millennium stillprobably the imperial city of Amurru. The inscription of Shamshi-Ailad to above referred reads: ' Shamshi-Adad, king of the universe, the ruler of Enlil, the worshipper
*
the patesi of Ashur, the builder of Ekisigga, of Dagan, in Tirqa".1 the temple of his assistance, the temple of Dagan In this inscription Shamshi-Adad "the priest-king of calls himself
Tlic god Ashur,"
he
was
's
himself
the
deeds" king
attempted
named
was
an
Assyrian
Shamshi-Adad
who
lived
Condamin
ZA
112
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
name in the time of Hammurabi; ruled another bearing- the same 1600 B. C. and in the ninth about 1850 B. C, and others about III, who ruled about 1600 B. C, used the Shamshi-Adad century. title "king of the universe" same (sarkissati), informs us and
the Tigris and the solicitous for the land between 2: 1 ff.). It would seem Euphrates (KTA reasonable to regard him as the one who rebuilt the temple in Tirqa referred to in the that he
was
above
or
inscription. mentioned covered. Besides this votive inscription, three contracts have been disThe firstis a deed of gift which was granted by Isharlim is identified by some Isarlim (which name who with 'Israel'),
king of Hana, the tablet, The
was
on
by the impression of the royal seal shown deed conveys a house in Al-eshshum, a part of the property of the gods, Shamash, which was
as
in the These names occur of the king. lim, The date reads "In the year when Isharoath formula (LC237). the king, built the great gate of the palace in the city of Kashand
dah." second is a deed of gift of several plots of land in the towns by Ammi-bail, Ja'mu-Dagan and Tirqa, to his servant Pagirum, '-ranunu, district (VS 7, 204). king of the same the son of Shunu deities,Shamash, The oath formula includes the names of the same
The
Dagan
and Itur-Mer, and that of the king Annni-bail, in whose is dated; i. e., "in the year when Ammi-bail, reign the document the king, ascended the throne in his father's house." The third tablet is also a deed of land, in Tirqa, which is dated Kashtiliashu established righteousness" "in the year when (LC The oath formula is similar to that of the other two deeds. 238). is the one who lived the Cassite king bearing this name Whether in the thirteenth, or even in the eighteenth century, or the one another, it is impossible to say. this part of the country is a marriage is unknown, but it certainly came Its exact provenance contract. It is dated "in the year when Hammufrom the same region.
Another inscription from
from the city rabih, the king, opened the canal Habur-ibal-Bugash " to show Dur-Isharlim This would seem to the city Diir-Igitlim. to Dur-Igitthe Habur on that a canal passed from Dur-Isharlim lim.
Since
Dur-Isharlim
apparently
was
royal
palace, Dur-
XI.
OTHEE
MESOPOTAMIAN
KINGDOMS.
113
Igitlim may also have been the castle of Igitlim, another ruler of Hana. These two names which have been so frequently quoted, incorrectly read Zakku-Isharlim were (Johns and Zakku-Igitlim
PSBA
Morgan's
1907, 177
Johns
which is in Mr. J. Pierpont library, clearly reads Dur-Isharlim and Dur-Igitlim. law-giver; but identified the king with the Babylonian
ff.).The original,
besides the date of the tablet not being a known which fact he recognized, there are other reasons tablet
was
that written in the Cassite period, unless it is assumed time, had already influenced the Cassites, prior to Hammurabi's in an extensive manner. Besides the name Mesopotamia of the
with that of the Cassite god Bugash, canal, which is compounded in the tablet, Kikkiwu,2 one of the four personal names mentioned influence. The other three names shows Mitannian of the contract, fBi-it-ti-dDa-gan,Pa-gi-rum, ther, Furand A-ba-ia, are West-Semitic. the seal impression on the tablet, which has not as yet been to the writer, peculiar to the Cassite published, is, as far as is known
period.3 These
facts point either to the conclusion that the Cassites conquered time, and this region prior to Hammurabi's that this great ruler recognized their deity in naming the caual he dug, which he did not do in any inscriptions known from Babylonia, different date formulae and that he employed outside of Babylonia ; or else the tablet was in the reign of another written later ruler. and
The
orthography
the
name
Hammurabih*
Ki-ik-ki-nu
has
no
bearing
on
the question,
Ei-ik-Tesup
in the
With
we
can
compare
Ei-ki-Tesup,
The
in Part
IV
of Babylonian
Records
Library
*
of J. Pierpont
Morgan.
It seems unfortunate that there should be so much confusion introduced into the spelling of the Babylonian lawgiver's name, for besides Hammurabi there have been introduced Hammurabih, Hammurapi, Hammurawi,
and
Hammu-rawih.
to accommodate
In
changing
trying
themselves
the pronunciation, scholars have been to four facts: the Assyrian translation
kimta rapastum, in of the name offered by a late scribe; to Amraphel, Genesis ; the form Am-mu-ra-pi, in an Assyrian letter ; and Ha-am-mu-rabi-ih in the Hana To these cases marriage contract. should be added the
occurrence
of the
name
written
dAm-mu-ra-pi
(YBC
4362), Am-mu-ra-bi
114:
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
murabi for the signs ih and i' were used interchangeably both in the Hamin the Amarna There is a name and in the Cassite period.5 letters El-ra-bi-ih (alsowritten I-li-ra-[bi-ili] ) which doubtless
represents
' '
the
same
element
rabi' from
"to
be
great.
Besides
of Zim
.
.,
and
and the votive inscriptions that of Shamshi-Adad, which throw most wel-
(YBC
6270),and Ha-am-mu-um-ra-pi
have been
discovered
should be written occasionally with rapi instead of the of rabi, and especially in Assyria, where the harder pronunciation There is some labial is frequently found, is not surprising. justification
this foreign
name
for the reading rapi from N2~) ' to heal, advanced by Prince, cf Nabubut the element can scarcely be the Arabic raft', ra-pa-' {BE 10:57) ; from the Arabic 1908 93 ), nor with Hommel OLZ high (Thureau-Dangin
'
.
' '
' '
' '
roots
were
rabaha, rabagha, etc. {OLZ 1907 235 f.). Evidence is necessary to make used in Arabic or Amorite names
that these roots the suggestions or "the family assumption of is still wide," well as the Yale
is wide" as "Amm convincing; and further, such a meaning The is without is broad" parallel for personal names. "to be airy, roomy, Luckenbill, who makes the root ITO less convincing Gilgamesh
{JAOS
37, 252).
Chiera's Amorite
list, as
tablet, show that the signs pi, bi, mi, and bu, mu, etc., represent Amorite but the statement that in Old Babylonian the word similar sounds, "son," "son" is not aplu but maru, for must and that names read abil,
be changed to awil, "man" {VMBS XI 1, 37 f.), which Luckenbill accepts Cf. ab-lim 31:54, Ab-lu-tim 37, 252), is difficult to understand. {JAOS 5, and cf. 28:19. etc., of the Code; a-bil 17:1, a-bi-il 210:10, etc., VAB
Moreover,
;
rm
use
of
would
rawi, rawih, rafi "to be great," is very common. root It Amorite names of Cappadocia.
how the Assyrian
While
or
are
in Amorite
names,
This element
seems
is
even
easy to understand comparatively Amm of an earlier age for scribe, mistaking the element In short, "family," translated rabi with rapaMum. the word meaning 's library to was this royal scribe of Ashurbanipal sufficiently educated know at least the pronunciation of the name, which he wrote ra-bi; and bi
in the Assyrian
period
cannot
be read
loi or
pi.
The
same
is true
of the
XI.
OTHER
MESOPOTAMIA^
KINGDOMS.
115
district, especially in the civilization of the Hana B. C, there should be menthe early part of the second millennium tioned document the early period which has been of also another
come
light upon
published by Pinches (CT 4, 1),concerning a certain Sin-iqisham, It would the sabir of Suhi, who dwelt in Halis of Suhi. appear Shamash-reshfrom this document that Suhi bordered on Mari.
shaknu of Suhi and Mari. of a later period (seebelow), was the mouth Suhi has been placed above Mari near of the Habur (EB p. 260, n),and it has been localized below, near 'Ana, although 38 p. it is recognized as a very indefinite place (Olmstead JAOS
usur
are
different forms
seem
language, with the show that the Babylonian formulae, was used for the legal documents ; yet usual Sumerian the terminology was peculiar to the district. Doubtless, back of is a different code of laws. in the For example, the documents
documents
of any infraction of the rights bestowed by the king, there was to be a fine of ten manehs of silver, and in addition the guilty party to have his head tarred with hot tar. was The nomenclature is especially of these few contracts found in Hana
case
dDa-gan,
Semitic verbal forms, like Ja-as-ma-'Ja-ri-ib-dAdad, etc. Of special importance is the frequent West
in the names, of the god Dagan about a dozen of compounded with that of the deity ; and besides, several
occurrence
which
are
for the library a copy made of the Code of Hammurabi And kings was (CT 13:47). surely the chronicler of early sufficiently intelligent to know The same is true of the royal scribe of this name. Nabonidus, King he referred to Hammurabi living as of Babylon, when
ro.yal scribe who
700 years
was
Even though the foreign name prior to Burna-Buriash. in a few instances written differently, these facts should ruler to prompt to hold to the pronunciation us these scribes deemed
namely,
5
of this be sufficient
correct,
Hammurabi.
BE
Cf. Ranke
Ki-sa-ah-bu-ut
with
1, Sign No. 198. Cf. also Ba-ah-lu-ti with Ba-'-lu-ti, Ei-sa-'-bu-ut, etc. (Clay PN) ; and ma~ah-du-ti 191:8 with letters. ma-'-du-ti 3 : 10, etc., Amarna
VI
116
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
On the seal of of Dagan." Isharlim, king of Hana, he calls himself "the beloved of Shamash In these few tablets several names contain that of and Dagan." individuals bear
the title "priest 'Ammu, Hammu,
as
Jakun-Amniu,
Bina-Ammi,
Ammi-bail
his son. Two witand perhaps Abilama nesses, Zimri-Hanata Guri and Igitlim, and a man are named designated as akil of the god Amurru, so commonly which titlewas used by the Amorites in Babylonia in the time of the First Dynasty. In this connection should be mentioned and Sarpanitum of the images of Marduk site king Babylon. during Agum-kakrime, and again the bringing back from Hani by the Cas-
Zimri-Hammu,
their reinstallation in Esagila at It has been suggested that they had been carried off the Hittite invasion in the time of Samsu-ditana (HB p. and
seem
the kingdom
Hana
of invasions, for the Hittites, if they had carthe early Amorite ried them away, would scarcely have left them in this region. In 1885 Pinches published an inscription found by Rassam at is an The inscribed Sippar, which also refers to Hana.
as
object
partially of green stone, fixed into an ornamental head, the bronze socket which is in the shape of a ram's On one of eyes of which are inlaid with some white composition. Shamash, king of heaven the broad surfaces is inscribed: "To oblong king son and earth, Tukulti(-ti)-Me-ir, of the country Hana, Hana, for [the safety Ilu-shaba, king of of] his land and his
instrument
of
own
rian protection he has presented it." The text is printed with AssyPinches published the inscription in 1883 he type, but when considered that the script pointed to the time of the king then II. He mentions, however, that it contains a called Shalmaneser few archaic forms {TSBA 8, 351 ff.). About fifty miles below the city Merra on It is regarded the present city 'Ana. the Euphrates
as
picturesque, and perhaps the most delightful city on the Euphrates. Xeno'Ana has long been identified with the ancient 'Anatho. Isidore of Charax mentioned phon called the city Charmande. Anatho of four stadia." The emperor Julian, of the fourth century, mentioned Anatha as being a city of importance, situated both on the islands of the river
as on
being
"an
XI.
OTHER
MESOPOTAMIA^
KINGDOMS.
11"
about
as
strong
is doubtless to be identified with the city city 'Anatho6 Hanatki mentioned in the tablet published by Pinches (CT 4, 1, see and Anat of Suhi, referred to by Ashur-nasir-pal as a city above), island in the Euphrates on an (I R 23: 15). the on cities, called 'Ana, perhaps bank of the river, and 'Anatu on the chief island, now called Lubhanded down, remains to bad, to account for the different names
Whether
there
were
twin
be
seen.
Yakut
in regarding
'Anat
poetical form
of the plural
mistaken. of 'Ana, is apparently have Unquestionably these names the god and goddess Anu and it is highly probable
been
worship
even
whence to Egypt.
it was
This
the chief centre of their carried into the region lying east and west, Amorite being true, 'Anu and 'Antu were
was
has
heretofore
XVTI).
(Amurru
are
142
same,
f. ;
the
it
Hana, written in cuneiform reasonable also that the name Ha-na, the name of the district,should be identified with the name of the god written Ana, Anu, Anna, Ani, and especially since the Semitic ayin which the name by the A contains, as is shown
Semitic forms, is very frequently reproduced bahlu, yadah, etc., all reproducing cf. hammu, in Amorite names.
The deity Hana
occur
by
h in cuneiform; especially
and Census and the Harran which of Assyrian texts. Babylonian This deity presided over other and an by the discovery advanced civilization in the "West, as is determined Code, prototype of the ancient Sumerian of the Hammurabi Han,
the
same
Hanu,
Hani,
in the Yale single tablet of which has been preserved and is now Babylonian Collection. The colophon "the of the tablet reads
a
8
On
'Ana
The
worth
on
and 'Anatho, see Cernik Studien Expedition Euphrates Expedition I 401 ff.; Peters Nippur I 144
24;
5 and
1872-73
or
Ains-
Explorations
the Euphrates
pp.
Charax
Amurath
to Amurath
p. 97;
Ohnstead
JAOS
118
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
law "the
of Nisaba
patroness
and
Hani"
of writing"
(MI p. 19 f.). The goddess Nisaba, (RA 8, 110),who wielded the stylus
to Gudea, together with Hani who was and gave understanding "the god of the scribes" and "lord of the seal," are thus credited Perhaps Nisaba (or Nidaba), with being the givers of the laws.
deity, of Hani, will prove to have been also a Western like Marduk name, and Nergal having been written with
cuneiform
ideogram,
in its transmission
It may prove pronunciation. From these considerations it appears because been credited to the Sumerians
very probably the country was
change
in the
name
if the laws
written in their language And had their origin among the Amorites. since murabi Semites during the Hamfilledwith these Western
Amorite, it is not improbable period, and that dynasty was Code drew extensively from Amorite sources. that the Hammurabi in for the fact that actions of Abraham This may are account
of Hagar, his adoption with the Code, e. g., his treatment accordance of his slave and steward Eliezer, etc. identical, the quesIf the name are tion of the city 'Ana and Hana Hana known this the centre of the hegemony as was arises
including the mouth the region of the Euphrates which embraced Hana It is probable that the kingdom was ruled by of the Habur. But is 'Ana, with its twin city Anatho on a city and deity Hana.
an
island, whose
few
tion? and Hanat, the city in quesIf this should prove correct, it must be conceded that not As above, Suhi in the difficulties remain to be explained.
name
is written Anat
time of Ashur-nasir-pal the region in which embraced located; Shamash-resh-usur was supposed Anatho, was of Suhi and Mari;
Anat,
the
governor
and as mentioned, in the tablet published by Pinches (CT 4:1), which belongs to the early period, Suhi borders it would In other words Mari. if 'Ana on seem 'Anat or as
in these periods to Suhi. Naturally the second millennium intervened, to which belong. contracts period the Hana Then also if the city 'Ana was the capital of the kingdom, the question arises did Isharlim, king of Hana, and perhaps also belonged Ammi-bail,
live in 'Ana
or near
Tirqa.
well
were as
date of the marriage the land deeds, would seem identified with
the
The
intimately
XI.
OTHER
MESOPOTAMIAN
KINGDOMS.
119
region
in which
Tirqa
was
calls himself governor of Suhi and Mari, the restoration of a canal of Suhi and the building of a mentions Tiglath-pileser I says in one day he Gabbari-ibni. city named from raided the country Several other important
cannot
be
subject.
Suhi to Carchemish
cities of Hammurabi
as were
(Annals V:
44
ff.).
located
well
prove
Mari.
where
Julian
lay north of liana, in the region which of Harran There is an Arabic saying Naharaim. Aram or was called Aram to the effect that the first two cities rebuilt after the deluge were
kingdom
Damascus
upon
was as
and
very
so
Harran,
implying
The
name
that
these
cities
means
were
looked "road,"
ancient.
Harran,
which
called because In short, it would seem route. important cities in Mesopotamia doubtless
it was
literature are references The earliest reference to the district and city singularly wanting. found in the Biblical traditions concerning the home of Abram. are letters and the Egyptian inscriptions throw Even the Amarna
Unfortunately,
little light
on
the
had
Mitanni
then
due to the fact that region, unquestionably kings possession of the land.. The Assyrian
the time of Adadclaimed to have controlled the region from From rated incorpothis time it was nirari I of the fourteenth century. in the Assyrian kingdom.
Valuable
information
concerning
the
district, however,
is
taken in the seventh century.8 obtained from an Assyrian census Though from the one under discussion, this period is far removed connevertheless it is highly probable that much of the knowledge cerning the culture can be applied also to the early period.
In this
7 8
census
Harran,
II p. 49.
120
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
form
land
names
merely
etc., are vineyards, orchards, gardens, and his sons are given ; of the pater familias eimmerated, as are also the live stock. The
as
kingdom
as
divided Dur-Nabu,
up
Harran,
into units, called qani. Certain cities, The the centres of these qani. etc., were
included the towns 'Atnu, Badani, qani, for example, Ianata, Saidi and Han-siiri, and the villages Arrizu and Kaparu. The large list of cities,towns, and villages that are named in the
Harran
tance different qani of the kingdom will prove of the greatest imporwhen this region is explored, and excavations are conducted. Attempts have been made, as for example at identifying some
Sarugi, which
is thought
is thought
name
is compared
an
name,
tance of great imporin throwing light upon the cults of the district, for they inform us what gods were The list of gods embraces worshipped. Adad, Ata, Atar, Aja,Alia, Ashirta, Hani, Nabii, Xashhu, Shamshi,
are
Til-Nahiri is associated with Nahor, another The personal names found in these tablets
Ser, Si'
are
Sin, Ter, etc. The elements with which these names instances Aramaic. Besides the use constituted are in many
or
of the generic term for god, namely ilu, the deities occurring most frequently are Si' and Nashhu Nashuh. Harran known to or was be the great centre of the worship of the moon-god Sin; and we here learn that the city was perhaps also the original habitat of Nashhu,
Doubtless,
who
as
became
Nushu
in Babylonia
(see Chapter
XVII).
Mesopotamian
states in this
See Johns
ibid., and
also Kraeling
Aram
and
Israel 25 f.
KINGDOMS
lands in the western or part of Amurru various kingdoms in different periods ; also some bore different names of the names time one people differed from those used at the same used among
by another.
was
it
was
trict disinscriptions, the Lebanon In the early Egyptian inscriptions called Retenu, while in the early Babylonian In the time of Gudea, Tidnu, Tidnu. or called Tidanu
district designations of a' mountainous with Basalla, were inscriptions, Phoenicia In the early Egyptian of this country. letters this region including the In the Amarna was called Zahi. tian Lebanon district was as well as in the late Egypcalled Amurru,
together
inscriptions; which name, as noted already, was used in Babylonia for the entire land west of that country. GIRThe name Tidnu was written with the cuneiform ideogram
G1R.
This ideogram
also stood
tricts of the disWinckler, probably of Palestine is called Gavi(ma:Ga-ri).2 Homruel Weber and Steuernagel located it in the Negeb. seemed
one
name
Amurru.
GIR-ra
letters
{Amarna-Tafeln mistake for ma'Ga-{az-)-ri fact that Gazri is eight times referred p. 1319). In view of the to in the letters as a city and not as a country, this does not seem
to think
was
a
that it
Niebuhr, followed by Knudtzon, have the probable. suggested identification of the name with the present El-Ghor, the Jordan plain. In Ta'annek No 2, there is a city Gur-ra1". It is to be noted in Babylonian that Gir figures prominently place or geographical names, which in the light of other facts gives rise to the question, there is any connection;3 and especially as the worship whether
1
i"tin
"
GlR-ra
A-mur"din-ni
(II R,
45
59e;
R,
8:85).
Cf. Amarna-Tafeln 256 : 23. A name as of Akkad, noted before, is Uri, which Amurru (see Chapter VII). It is, to say the least,
3
2
is the
an
name
(121)
122
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
of the West
Semitic god
Gir
was
carried to Babylonia
ter (seeChap-
XVII).
to the western which properly belonged region of Amurru is that which embraced The name the city of Damascus. letters and the name of of the district is called Ubi in the Amarna its chief principality is alDi-mas-qa, alDu-ma-as-qa alTi-maand to Egypt. In the Old The region at this time was as-gi.
kingdom
subject
to
Testament,
eastern
the
on
In the-thne of David, a city is mentioned Zobah as the principality This later established himself in Damascus. of Rezin, who lasted for over two centuries. The history of kingdom Aramaean Rezin in this kingdom, when which lost its political importance Hobah
has beeen identified with Ubi. between Hamath and Damascus
concert with well known.
Pekah,
king
Assyria,
is
in the mentioned inscriptions of the early period is not due to the fact that it did The "eye of the world," as Julian importance. not possess much called it, could hardly have been other than a city of the greatest
The fact that Damascus frequently in the earliest period of the land's history. The plain regarded as the fairest of the four earthly paradises of Damascus, by the Arab, a rich and beautiful oasis, irrigated by the cold and
importance
waters of the Barada, through which also flows the clear mountain Pharphar, and adorned with a wealth of parks and gardens, is a But it was not only a great city veritable "pearl of the East."
millennium
part
B. C.
Such
natural
component
For
gi(n),
becomes
years "land
has as its chief of Babylonia name. also an element similar to another Amorite geographical it has been held that Shin'ar (or Sumer) is derived from Ein-
the
name
"IPJC
the palatisation of the k, which of the reed," by assuming becomes r ; i. e., Kin-gin = Kin-gir = Singir = s before i, and n It seems This explanation has been adopted by certain scholars.
since
we
have
no
for justification
is gir, as shown gi{n),that the second element in the name (SBH 130, obv. 24:25, 26:27),Ei-en-gi(r)-rd(DV)(Gudea cyl. A 11:16; is well known. 21:25; B, 22:22). The apocopation of r in Sumerian
XII.
THE
MEDITERRANEAN
KINGDOMS.
123
inevitably site in the very heart of the ancient Semitic world was Such a site on the border of the desert, settled in the hoary past. have ceased to be inhabited, and a veritable harbor, would never would by reason of its situation be a city of craftsmen and a mart
Such of the Semitic world. considerations the writer to look for the city mentioned among the earliprompted est Babylonia, in the identification of which resulted records of
a area
for
large
Mashki
or
Ei-Mashki
of the Ur
also in asserting that it is highly probable Testament (Gen. 15: 2), is the same, namely words, Mesheq Damascus.'"
mulae and in date forof the city; and in the Old that Mesheq
Mash-qi.
In other "that is
Petrograd
governor
period.5 If the identification of the mountain Mashu of the Gilgamesh (Damascus) epic with Hermon, and the city Ei-Mashki with Mesheq is correct (see Amurru highly probable that then it seems 126), the early name "a with Mash,
name
Mash,
desert found
in the Assyrian
inscriptions,
although
is preferably
and associated with the Hebrew to be read with others, """Mash. The Mesha
as
thou
the mountain (Gen. 10: 30). of the East" Sephar has not been located, but it seems that the direction in the description of the land, occupied by these descendants of Eber, was
towards
Sephar,
north to the southeast; and that Mesha referred to. On the deity Mash and Mashtu
4
from
is probably
see
The
verse
me,
"
would
thou
give is Damascus
5
Abram read: "And said, 0 Lord God, what I go childless and my family is a son of Mesheq seeing Eliezer." See Amurru 129 ff. and Miscl. Inscr. p. 2.
then
"
wilt
that
Cf. Sayce ZA
The
VI, 161 ; and VB I 176. parallel passage 1 Chron. 1 : 17, reads Meshek
Moaox.
and
the Septuagint
in both passages
124:
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
There
is
city Me-is-tu
This may prove a city dedicated to the goddess.7 In the far north of the Mediterranean there is a Semitic region important role in the earliest period of hisan tory, centre which played
25).
in the Amarna
Letters
(256:
It is long time, namely Aleppo. has been identified since that Hallapu, probably also written Halman, Its great distance, however, from by scholars with Aleppo.s
as
even
it does
at the present
Babylonia,
on
as
well
as
the part of some features of the city make it another be sought by people ; and this, it would of the identification. Two fragments
of
a
is responsible for hesitation this identification.9 The natural location that would early seem, ableness adds to the reason-
historical epic which deals with events of two kings who ruled in the and Tammuz,
wars
in the West above, and Tidnum identified as another form of the name A text which has justbeen published importance
he maintains, about the time of Sargon the founder of the dynasty of Akkad, who earlier than the ruled, the present writer inclines to think, much Barton reads the paslate date now sage generally assigned to him.
as
ki za-ba-unu-su and translates: "To Ishtar from the land of Haleb." This text identifies the goddess Ashirta, as the present writer prefers to write the name, with the in the prologue We then recall the passage of the city Halabu. Code of Hammurabi (III 50 f.)which reads: "Who put into execution laws of Aleppo, who makes the heart of Ashirta the
the illustrious prince, the lifting up
7
rejoice,
recog-
of whose
hands
Adad
for the Aramaic If the writer's reading En-Mashtu transcription of dNin-IB, namely njJ'UN, is correct (see above and Amurru p. 200), the Letters. town a'Me-is-tu inay be the clNin-lB of the Amarna
8
'"'
p. 275 ; KAT*
47 etc.
to the Hammurabi
were was a
Code
Babylonian
are and Bit Karkara mentioned in the prologue is suggestive that they between Girsu and Adab but this is by no means conclusive. That this city seems
impossible.
XII.
THE
MEDITERRANEAN
KINGDOMS.
L25
nizes;
the warrior in Karkar, the heart of Adad appeases of the temple S-ud-gal-gal." who reestablishes the appointments tant These two passages point to the fact that this is the most imporknown; and also, together centre of Ashirta-Ishtar worship one indicate that the city was of with the firstmentioned passage, Babylonian history. in the early period of great prominence by some has been regarded versal Ashirta-Ishtar scholars as a unilands. deity in some became a male Semitic goddess, who in the Her worship, however, originally had a centre somewhere who The texts from the Mesopotamian Semitic world. region would had been there. The view that her habitat not lead us to suppose that Ashirta-Ishtar
from
the male god In the light of the fact that the cult of Ashirta from Babylonia. and was paratively carried comprevailed so extensively in Western Amurru, somewhere that her habitat was seem early to Egypt, it would in the Mediterranean district. Surely the two texts
referred to, the one belonging to the early Semitic period, and the lead us to believe not only that other to the time of Hammurabi,
is the most important centre of her worship known, but also that it was probably her original habitat. This fact may throw light upon the Cappadocian tablets, which furnish names ably Probus compounded with many with Ashir and Ashirta.
Halabu,
or
Aleppo,
the home
of each
was
in this northwestern
region
of the
Semitic world. Halabu was have also a centre of Adad worship, of which we several indications in the inscriptions. The Code of Hammurabi in the passage above referred to, as well as the syllabaries, point to this fact. In CT 25 16: 22 dll-Ha-al-la-bu=dIM. Naturally it is possible that another of the many names of the storm-god may be implied, as Ashir, Uru, etc., but for the present Adad is stood.10 underPrefixing and pronouncing the word "god" besides the determinative for deity are West Semitic customs, to writing which the writer has previously referred. In short, it is highly
probable that when excavations are conducted in this region, light that will show not only that this is a very will be forthcoming
10
Cf
VS
7, 95
4.
126
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
of the Ashirta cult ancient seat of Semitic culture but the home (seealso Chapter XVII). inscriptions it is ascertained that at least From the Egyptian in existence in several of the coastal cities,notably Byblos, were for B. C, and, as stated, there is reason the third millennium believing the city had a much greater antiquity (seeChapter XIV). in the Amarna texts, Simyra, another city on the coast mentioned
in the texts of the third millenSunira, is also known the modern nium in the B. C, having been identified with Simuru mentioned date formula of the 55th year of Dungi, king of Ur, about 2400 B. C.
district situated in the mountainous to the east of the Tigris, because the o subjectionf the four cities Urbillu, Simuru, Lulubu, and Ganhar formed the object a single of This does not seem (SA, p. 287). conclusive, for it is campaign Some
hold
that Simuru
was
chastised at the beginning or at the quite possible that Lulubu was have been a city Urbillum may ending of the year's campaign. Dungi On his following campaign, in the vicinity of Simuru. destroyed Humurti
some name
identified by of that
has long since been Humurti and Ki-Mashki. being a good transcript with the Biblical Gomorrah, in cuneiform ; and Ki-Mashki, as noted above,
in gaining the Certainly Dungi is very Damascus. probably had at least conquered part of title "king of the four quarters," kingdom Here Amurru. the Amorite of the Lebanon properly
region
can
second language The letters written in the Babylonian and script to IV by kings and III and Amenhotep Amenhotep princes, subject including copies of letters sent from Egypt, in the fifteenth century
B. C, enable us to liftthe curtain and get an intimate acquaintance Western Amurru that time. at with the political situation of Hittite archives at Boghaz-koi, an ancient discovery of the
belonged
The
language and script, capital of the Hittites, written in the same knowledge our supplements of this period from a different source in a most remarkable than manner ; and also throws light on more These documents times. of years following the Amarna include treaties made by the Hittites with kingdoms and states in
a
century
Amurru
(see MDOG
35).
For
years
the
Amarna
tablets have
tablets has
XII.
THE
MEDITERRANEAN
KINGDOMS.
127
in the histories of the ancient Near East. is forthcoming of the early peoples of Amurru
excavations and research, these inscriptions will in a comprehensive figure prominently reconstruction of the land's history. I (1547M501), the Mitanni nation, In the reign of Thutmose having taken people, is found occupying Aram, probably an Aryan previous period. possession of the old Semitic centre in some had great influence a strong Mitanni apparently was nation, and
Though the Cassites were ruling at and Babylonia. land contains a great find the nomenclature Babylon, we of the letters, many In the Amarna Mitannian names. many of tbe city
upon
Amurru
also bear
at
some
them.
How
Three
that
brought
later, desiring to establish friendly relations the daughter of Artatama, the king, secured
in marriage. She is thought to be the mother of his Amenhotep III. The two kings of Mitanni who followed, son, Shuttarna and Dushratta, also sought alliance with Egypt. In the Amarna seemed
were 's was power period, however, Mitanni waning to give way to the Hittites. Internal troubles probably
and
responsible for this, for we find Itakama, prince of the city Kinza, who belonged to the ruling house of Mitanni, in league their king, having previously with the Hittites. Shubbiluliuma, suffered at the hands his opportunity to push further of Mitanni, saw inroads upon districts and the Egyptian south and make Mitanni. In league also with Abdi-Ashirta and Aziru, Amorite district who
a were
to subject
Egypt,
princes worked the Hittites and yet maintained their relations with Egypt of by a duplicity that is almost incredible. The Phoenician prince Rib-Addi Byblos insistently made to open the eyes of of efforts the Pbaraoh, but in this he failed. When he had asked why taken
revolt.
These
Simyra,
Abdi-Ashirta
pleaded
that he had
done
so
because
128
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
asked to deliver the city from the Shehlal. At last the insistent declarations of Eib-Addi and other loyal princes had an clear; whereupon effect, and the prince's treachery became he
was
army
under
the Egyptian
Amanappa Naharin,
was was
sent, and
Simyra
was
retaken,
and
with
the land
restored
to Egyptian
not wishing
to force matters
"When the Egyptians had of Kinza and withdrew. districts of Mitanni, and without meeting retired he fell upon Some princes resisted ; Dushratta, marched in force into Naharin. the people of Qatna and the land of were carried off to the Hittite region. Itakama, who had in the meantime reestablished his relations with the Pharaoh,
cities were Nuhashshi captured;
and
together with his father Shutarna, defeated, and carried away. were On the accession of Amenhotep
Mitanni
his sovereignty
overt .any
in Asia. might
At
acts which
arouse
him.
The
Pharaoh,
however,
the situation, had no desire to continue relations understanding Later the Hittite king wrote asking why he had not with him. continued the correspondence which had been kept up by his father.
Hittite embassy even at the new appeared capital, which had been created by Amenhotep ; but he abandoned relations with the Hittites, for they had encroached upon his land. Abdi-Ashirta his
son,
who in inspiring the princes of Ubi, the district about Damascus, to he attacked revolt. With the assistance of the men of Arvad Simyra, which with Byblos alone had held out, for Irkata, Ullaza,
taken by Aziru, been killed,his place was had already assisted the Hittites in taking Qatna,and
having
Sidon, Beirut, and other cities had been defeated, and had gone to him, while many During over other cities had been captured. the time this had transpired, the faithful vassal, Bib -Addi of Byblos, continued to write beseechingly many times to his king, exposing the treachery of Aziru and begging for help; but his
efforts
were
was
killed, and
XII.
THE
MEDITERRANEAN
KINGDOMS.
1 "-""'
Phoenicia,
" (routes
and
the Lebanon
as
valley, about
far
as
Aziru. of the Amorite had its effect upon Amorites The disaffection of the northern Zimrida and Several, as Milkili, Labaya, the Canaanite princes. that Abdi-Ashirta course of treachery others, followed the same of the southern princes, Biridiya faithful and others remained of Megiddo, Abdi-Hiba of Jerusalem for help, to to Egypt and insistently appealed, as did Rib-Addi,
and Aziru
had indulged
in.
Some
stem
and
Sutu;
succumbed.
Aziru
was
summoned
to appear
after he had
Abi-milki, and cities and killed Rib-Addi, delay he appeared at the Egyptian princes. After some influence, in convincing Amenhotep and succeeded, through
captured
the
other
court,
that
he
Egyptian loyal ; and Inning acknowledged suzerainty, was as a of Egypt, returned to his land and reinstated, by the grace But his allegiance to ruler of a kingdom of considerable extent. biluliuma ShubEgypt, if he was actually sincere, was of short duration.
was
capturing vassal.
his mercenaries, the Habiri, to assist him in the cities,and he had regarded him in consequence as his had
sent
defeated Aziru, who cast himself He was to enter at his feet, and swore allegiance. compelled into a treaty; and an annual tribute of 300 shekels in gold was him. Aziru in the treaty is named as "the king of placed upon Although the Amorites." the Habiri had assisted the northern
therefore
He
attacked
and
as
well
is not
treaty
the southern princes to throw off the yoke of Egypt, it 's kingdom included Canaan. Prom the clear that Aziru
as
drawn
up
in the time
an
Pharaoh
II, it would seem that the leaving him alliance with Shubbiluliuma, With Aziru 's grandson, Abbi-Teshshub,
of Ramses
the terms
of the Amorite vassalage were renewed in a treaty which Mursil, the son of Shubbiluliuma, made with him. The Hittites continued to maintain their authority in the district for four or five decades, until the stupor that enveloped Egypt, had been
came
which When
brought
on
by
Amenhotep
disappeared. Palestine
into
Seti I
130
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
restoration of Egyptian He crossed the Jordan and probably welcomed. On a later campaign stele in the Hauran. Phoenicia, where
the
supremacy set up
was
his boundary
met
he
Hittite
he only succeeded in reestablishforces farther north, but it seems ing During Egypt's the time boundary the Lebanons. south of active in Aniurru, the Amorites under PutAhi threw off their allegiance to the Hittites ; but this king was terms of vassalage, and Gashuliawi, later reinstated on the same
when
Ramses
II
was
The Hittite king Hittite princess, was given him in marriage. stipulated in the treaty that the sovereignty of the land should 35, (seeMDOG pass to the son of his daughter and descendants
43
ff.).
In the treaty later drawn
up
by Ramses is not
boundary
was
between
the two
lands
not
although
beyond the point established advanced this is also indefinite. In the rocks near
he had carved a stele ; at this time he carved two more, This being mark the extreme point of his supremacy. which may true, the Lebanon country north of Phoenicia, ruled by Put-Ahi,
early years
continued
embrace
to be
Hittite.
kingdom
and the coastal cities further unlikely that this kingdom continued to maintain but probably, several centuries; not only in quasi-independence, the suzerainty of other at least for part of the time, free from kings who ruled on the east and west On the Amorite nations.
side of the Jordan
see
Phoenicia
Chapter
XV.
XIII
AMORITES
As
IN
CAPPADOCIA
in early as 1881 Pinches called attention to two tablets, one he conthe British Museum, sidered and the other in the Louvre, which in an unfamiliar language, and which because were written from the neighborhood tablets had come the of Caesarea, he called
Cappadocian
Win.
M.
(PSBA
Nov.
1881
11
Sayce, searched in the bazaars of Caesarea for additional specimens lets, of these tabSubsequently M. Chantre, five of which he was able to secure. Eyuk "the black mound", the French explorer, excavated Kara
Ramsay,
at the suggestion
of charred and burnt remains, about called because it is a mass fifteen miles to the north-east of Caesarea, where the inscriptions Besides tablets, considerable were said to have been found.
so
pottery
en
were
discovered
at the site.
sion (Mis-
published from the same tablets coming twenty-four group quarter, of he secured in the bazaars at Caesarea, Constantinople, and which Cairo. He determined that they were lect; written in an Assyrian diaa
In
1889
Egyptologist,
Later Delitzsch able to read most of the names. published an important philological study of these tablets ; which followed by a discussion of them on the part of Jensen. was sequently Suband
was
lations published transliterations and transof a selection of the texts. Other tablets have since been by Pinches, Sayce, Scheil, and Thureau-Dangin.1 It published was early pointed out by Sayce and others that the people of this district observed a week of five days (hamustum), and reckoned
Sayce
and
Peiser
succession of officerscalled eponyms (limmu), a custom which we know the Assyrians observed in the firstmillennium B. C. These facts considered in connection with the use in names of the
a
1
time by
For
bibliography
1912
of the Cappadocian
literature,
see
Johns
Schweich
Lectures
88 f.
(131)
132
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
god
Ashir
or
Asliur
were
a people represented More recently Sayce has proposed that the tablets show that the lonian worked for Babysilver, copper and lead mines of the Taurus were firms; that roads and walled cities had been built in that
that the
region
mainly
lonian order for the Babyand their agents ; and that the soldiers were merchants lonia.2 drafted from Assyria, which was then a province of BabyAssyrians, The view that the names represent and that
in order that troops could maintain
are
the tablets
dated
also by Meyer.3 tablets shows that the Babylonians against the Hittites ; that they are
according It is Jastrow's
to Assyrian
is shared idea that the discovery of these had established an outpost here
epcnyms
between
they
are
the Euphrates
actions proof of active business transvalley and Asia Minor ; and that
of the greatest value in illustration of trade routes that must have been established through the heart of Asia Minor at this It is not impossible that these observations will early period.4 for the to be fact; but nevertheless they must ultimately prove
present be considered as wholly hypothetical. found on The only connection with Babylonia one the impression of them of a seal found upon
the tablets is in
reads
Ur-dShar-banda Scribe
Son
quarters
King King
of Ur of the four
of Ur-Nigin-Gar
servant
thy
The design of the seal portrays a seated deity, before whom stands This has its demigod leading the worshipper. a seal which is in every way an exact counterinscription written in Sumerian part belonging to the Ur found in Babylonia seals of many is of a type altogether different from other seal impressions dual the tablet. It also should be added that the indivion bearing the name that is on the seal is not found in the text.
Dynasty;
and
on
the tablet
Museum
Journal Eultur
IX
Reich The
XIII.
AMORITES
IX
CAPPADOCIA.
1 ^o
Syro-Hittite.
different type, and shows has designated peculiar to the seals that Ward The inscriptions of eight seal impressions
seems
a
to be of
by
with
the
one
above,
are
example
of which
composed is :
of two
phonetically,
Ib-ni-JAdad
son
of I-ti-A-sur.
The
so
art,
as
shown
one
in the reproductions of the seals, which are not to show that it also is different could desire, seems with Assyria
on
is recognized as Babylonian. to be the only actual connection "What appears be shown is to be found in a seal impression can
from Kara
that
Eyuk,
published
by
Sayce, which
dA-sir
inscriptions:
Sarru-kewu(f) pa-te-si
I-[ku-num] of I[kunum],
transcription
published, but not a photographic Whether pany any images accomreproduction of the seal impression. inscription is not stated. the
Sayce restored the name I-[ku-num], and ingeniously suggested Sar-ken-kata-Asir, that Sarru-kenu is an abbreviation of the name follows Ikunum as an ancestor of Ashir-rim-nisheshu whose name
(KTA
63:
6)
on
the supposition
are
father and son; although close relationship cannot exist between the other three kings or patesis who restored the wall of Ashur during a period of about seven hundred years.
In the advanced notice of the Ashur excavations reference is to a Sharru-ki-in son in a newly discovered made of Ikunum inscription (MDOG 38 p. 33, also 49 p. 50). It would seem, fore, therethat Sayce 's suggestion is probably it is correct, although Shar-ken-kata- Ashir. a later ruler named possible that there was Moreover, the inscription of the seal found on the Cappadocian tablet refers to Sargon, son both patesis of I[kunum], who were
of Ashur. This seal, besides the employment of the five-day week (hamustwm), the dating by archons for reckoning time (limmu),and the deity Ashir found in personal names, the points of conrepresent
134
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
that have
above is the only point of contact The working except that the Babylonian syllabary is used. of firms, the building of roads and fortresses as by Babylonian mines outposts against the Hittites, the drafting of soldiers from discussed Assyria, the business relations between the Euphrates Asia Minor, although possible, are purely Valley ideas.
and In
conjectural
Cappadocian tablets published the writer sees no basis the many for any of these statements. On the contrary, they are business known as contracts such as are commonly and legal documents and decisions, as well as letters of the character usually found in Babylonian
local The transactions archives. referred to are business affairs ; and indicate a state of society quite independent Assyria. or of far-off Babylonia temple
tablet with the Babylonian seal gives the names of three and mentions their seals. witnesses, Zilulu, Asur-dan, and Ikunum, On the tablet, however, are five seal impressions, three of which Ikunum, bear names Amur-Asir and the Ur-dSar-banda the royal
The two impressions without names the seal in question. could be those of Zilulu and Asur-dan, and that of the other, the the seal of scribe who wrote the tablet, But in what capacity was
The
scribe
on
used, as his name The seal of Ur-dShar-banda who drew up the document; Amur-Asir
royal scribe in which case the tablet was written in the time of Ibi-Sin, King of Ur. It of course have been may later time by one of the contracting parties of the document used at a into possession of it. The occura witness or rence who had come
have
belonged
to
Amur-Asir must be explained of the seal bearing the name in this way ; for as stated, no individual of that name is mentioned in the document. However, since we know that the control of the Ur kings very probably reached into this region, and because
the script of the tablet can be said to belong to this general period, it is possible that the scribe was a representative of the crown. in the tablets This being true, how is the existence of the names
which are compounded with that of the deity Ashir or Ashur, and the observance of the hamustum and limmu to be explained, if what that these are importations from scholars assert is true, namely Assyria?
If that is correct, it follows that they
are
indications
XIII.
AMOEITES
IX
CATPADOt'IA.
L35
ent civilization than is at presantiquity for the Assyrian But it scarcely seems that Assyrian reasonable recognized. in the control and service of Babylonia would have had soldiers the culture of the district as the introduction such influence upon
of
greater
would
-it trict the disat present
seem,
does
if these in
are
actually importations,
that Assyria
also
we
some
tablet with the Assyrian seal discovered in Cappadocia, dialect, raises questions even more and written in the Cappadocian Is it actually a seal of the patesi; and if so, to answer. difficult it used by some he present in person; or was was officialto give Ilu-shuma If there was one ruler named authority to his action? in the early period who was the a contemporary of Sumu-abu, dynasty, Sargon would have ruled about founder of the Babylon If, as Meyer proposes, the time of the grandfather of Hammurabi. there then
Ilu-shuma (Geschichte $463), early rulers named rabi. Sargon could have ruled perhaps the time of Hammuafter Moreover, the question is, did the jurisdiction Assyria of
were
two
extend to this far away district of Asia Minor also in this period? If the kings of the Ur Dynasty controlled this region at an earlier into possesUr lost its supremacy, come time, did Assyria, when sion of it? If so, Assyria must have played a role in the overthrow
of the Ur Dynasty, of which also there is at present in the time of Hammurabi, indication. Moreover, know Babylon Assyria. the suzerain over was At Yuzgat
a
above,
we
but
script, in another dialect, probably the same as the tablets from Arzawa in the Amarna collection. This tablet is in possession of Another, purchased the University of Liverpool. at Aleppo, now written
large tablet
was
found
in the
same
of Mr.
Berens,
which
came
was
ff.), probably
In the spring
from
published Hittite a
by
source
Sayce
in
Library
or
Unfortunately
published
deciphered.
136
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
The
tablets written by princes throughout of the Amarna lonian Western Asia has shown how extended was the use of the Babyin the middle of the second syllabary and also the language discovery
Some that the script was used millennium. of the letters show is demonstrated The same by the disfor other languages. covery also
Kara not far from of the Hittite archives at Boghaz-koi, In other words, we Eyuk the other side of the Halys. are on language familiar with an extensive use and of the Babylonian in the second millennium B. C. in this part of the ancient script civilized world. The Kara Eyuk tablets, we
are
arises, how much earlier was what we call the Babylonian in this part of the ancient world? It is known that Babylonian use kings a millennium earlier than the Ur Dynasty exploited this introduced ? Were their language and script then region.
Scarcely of what
therefore script in
gained Boghaz-koi,
Most the surface has been scratched in this vast region. know at present of the peoples who lived there has been we Kara is called surface research. Eyuk, through what
and
a
examined, but what revelations wUl excavations at other sites in Lycia, Phrygia, Ciliin antibring forth. A civilization comparable quity cia or Pamphylia
other sites have
few
been
doubtless and development with that of Egypt and Babylonia The discovery of the Minoan existed in Asia Minor. civilization in Crete dating about 2800 B. C. offers a foretaste of what is to be ruin hills of Asia Minor when excavated will yield materials not only for the solution of innumerable problems, but also for knowledge of undreamed of peoples and civilizations prior
expected.
The
Not many years ago nothing was of the Greek period. known of the Hittites save what is contained in the Old Testament. To-day largely through contemporaneous records from other lands,
to
the dawn
know considerable about we and also through some of their own, the Hittite empire which played such an important the role among Presumably through excavations other peoples of great nations. district will become known, the knowledge comthis may of whom pel radical readjustment our of Asia. early history of Western
a
ideas concerning
XIII.
AMORITES
IN
CAPPADOCIA.
!.",:
While,
as
is what we handwriting
tablets above, the syllabary used in these Cappadocian it must be kept in mind that the call early Babylonian,
padocian of these inscriptions is peculiar to the district. Captablets can usually be recognized by their general appearance. The script has peculiarities, and as mentioned, they are written in what is regarded as a dialect, under the influence of the The tablet with the Hittite or some other tongue of the region.
lonian scarcely written by the royal BabyNor is it likely that the seal seal it bore. scribe whose belonged to a local scribe, for the names of the seal are inscribed in Babylonian
seal impression
was
mentioned, the art of this seal is typical In short, the character ments, Babylonian. of the docuand contents the forms used in the contracts, the language, the script, etc.,
Sumerian.
Then also,
as
Assyrians, do not show that they were or written by Babylonians in the interests of Babylonians Assyrians ; but imply rather or or have existed that they are the products of a civUization that may
for
a
long
according
in this region. Further, the custom to eponyms shows that there was already a time
an
of dating
provincial
are
advanced order. organization of in the Cappadocian Among the personal names Hittite or some that have been recognized as
most
tablets there
of them
are
West
Semitic
or
are
(or Ashur),
Amorite,
are gods' names compounded. lonized, owing to the use of that language
only do the deities show but also the elements with which the Not a few of these have been Baliyetc.
and
mass
into Asia Minor moved known. It would seem that the mines in the vicinity of Kara Whence would have been as attractive to them as to others. the cultural elements had in common these people which Assyrians is
a
origin. is not
Eyuk
came
with
we more question. of the early history of the intermediate country, prior to the occupation the Mitanni people, we have light on this problem, of would for reasons which given awaits solution.
Probably
if
had
knowledge
XIV
EGYPT
Egyptian
scholars
AND
AMURRU
that a Semitic element agree that there was itself in the beginnings of Egyptian tion. civilizaEgypt lexicographically and grammatically of
ern shows this. Also craniological research has shown that the northin the early period, in contrast with the southern, Egyptian shows what is called a decidedly Semitic or Semite-Libyan type, the
representation of a Bedouin is also from the First Cataract. The introduction of sun-worship credited to this Semitic element, because it is generally supposed
same as
found
on
First Dynasty
to have
emanated
from
Western
Asia.
the dark period of several centuries from about 2350 B. C, when Memphis was given up as the capital, was historic and the kingdom split up into petty principalities as in preintroduced.1 It is Semitic loan words were times, many
It is recognized
that during
this very period that the Amorites invaded Babylonia and established the dynasties of Nisin, Larsa (See Chapter VIII.) and Babylon.
to be noted
that it was
during
In the firsthalf of the second millennium B. C, an Asiatic people Egypt for a century, or, completely dominated called the Hyksos
as some
hold,
or
Arabians
called them The late traditions of Manetho tribe Phoenicians, while Josephus, in his diatime.
Contemporaries
I (1580Ahmose When against Apion, calls them Hebrews. 1557 B. C.) captured Avaris in the eastern part of the Delta, he into Amurru. He even them as drove them northward pursued far
a as
(Phoenicia). It
III
was
was
century
Bondi
Dem
Hehraisch-phonezischen
Spracheweige
worter
in hieroglyphischen
Fremdworte
und
und
hieratischen Texten;
Eigennamen
kanaanaischen
im Aegytischen.
(138)
XIV,
EGYPT
AXD
AMTTBRTJ.
L39
kingdoms,
which
had
their centre
at
Apophis, three rulers of the Hyksos who hore the name Jacob-hur Khen-zer or known, Khian, three others are and is Semitic, and perhaps Jacob-el.2 The last mentioned also one
Besides
of the others. impossible that some
or
two
thinks that it is not chief of the Jacob-tribes of Israel for a the leadership in this obscure age, and that such an
Prof. J. H. Breasted
account
of these surprisingly well for the entrance This, in his judgment,would make the Hebrews allies of the Kadesh
or
of the Bedouin
Hyksos
{HE p. 220). empire Prof. W. M. Muller, in his recent work on Egyptian mythology, informs us that a very considerable part of Egyptian religious derived from or was influenced by the mythology thought was of
it must be assumed that at On-Heliopolis, the was situated at the earliest centre of Egyptian religion, which a constant route from the east, there was entrance of the caravan An illustration interchange of ideas in the most remote periods. Asia.
He
thinks
of this is to be found in the Semitic myth of the conflict between Marduk of and Tiamat, the god of light and the primeval monster the abyss, which reached Egypt after 2500 B. C, where it gave rise to the story of the gigantic serpent Apop the ('Airo"""), enemy of Miiller says that only faint traces of the recreation the sun-god. of the world from the carcass of the abysmal dragon are found, but in many recur other ideas bearing on the conflict with the monster variants (EM 104 ff.). The introduction of this myth into Egypt in this early period, prior to the time any influence from Babylonia
and Assyria had been felt,and nearly two millenniums earlier than it can be shown that the Assyrians had made use of it,is a most interesting substantiation of the position taken by the writer on its Amorite origin and especially since it only appeared^ as far as
is known, In the in Assyria
more
{Amurru
44
ff.).
important
has proposed
14""
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AM0RITES.
not
think
the
borrowings
consisted
in
more
of gods motifs; at least the actual names have been generally appropriated. to seem however,
became
was
than
the
she was the present writer that perhaps Orion, whose formation from Uru on an, like Shimshon, He
was
the goddess of Byblos in Phoenicia, who known soon after 2000 B. C, when and venerated in Egypt to identified with Hat-hor (see EM p. 154). It seems Ba'alath,
name
appears
an
to be
early brought to Egypt, where sky," and identified with the sun-god Horus, and associated also that this deity may also with Osiris. Doctor H. P. Lutz proposes Osiris, he thinks, is of West Semitic or Amorite an prove exception ; by the Sumerians or early probably also borrowed Among Babylonians. the reasons given by Lutz is the comparison with of Osiris' epithet Usr wnn nfriv "Osiris the good Being" Asarlu dug (oftenread Silig-lu-sar) Babylonian Sumerian or the origin ; and
was
; and also because of the connections meaning which has the same Adonis Tammuzbetween the Osirian mythology and the Amorite texts, introduced in Egypt as early as the Pyramid myth which was
3000
B. C,
or
earlier.
Here how
should
the Pyramid
a
texts narrate
of his body was whither Isis his wife of the myth makes
part
washed Byblos
be added also the fact that by Set, murdered after Osiris was ashore in a great chest at Nedyt, reclaim
journeyed to
it. Plutarch's
Breasted
thinks this may introduced into the myth, this If, however, Byblos was at Abydos. occurred before the thirteenth century B. C.3 The parallel between Osiris has been pointed Tammuz the Babylonian and the Egyptian
out by Baudissin
the place where his body was later localized be Nedyt, although it was
narrative found.
{Adonis and
Eshmun
are once
1911),and
independent
others.
Barton
maintains
Tammuz
manifestations
common of a primitive cult Hamitic, while Semites, but originally Osms and Isis were and Tammuz and Ishtar had their origin in Arabia (JAOS 25 213 ff.).
In the light of all that is known, for doubting that Tammuz and
"
however, Ishtar
are
there
seems
littlereason
;
Amorite
Egypt,
and
it is not
Development
of Religious
Thought
in Ancient
p. 26.
XIV.
EGYPT
AND
AMl'REU.
"H
impossible been
correct. also prove suggested, may Following the Hyksos occupation of Egypt, or after 1600 B. C, fashionable in Midler says the worship of Asiatic deities became
Egypt,
dwelling
Ba'al
being
mountains,
or
immigrants, mercenaries, merby many chants, Ba'al is described as the god of thunder, in the sky, and terrible in battle. Since
means
Palestine, Anmrru
were
a or
"lord" and is a generic title of deities in simply like one the kind of a god referred to was probably land from the Amorite Adad. Other sods imported
or
Resheph
Reshpu,
called Reshpu-Sharamana, the names of Reshpu with which combines Astarte Shalmu; Shalman or (Ashirta), who is
once
at Memphis, chief temple was but who was Qedesh, at Ramses and elsewhere; also worshipped standing on a lion pictured, like the nude goddess of Babylonia, and holding in one hand a serpent, and in the other, flowers ; Asit, "the
mistress
of heaven,"
whose
probably
another
;
form
a
and sensual
Nukara 153
namely Nugara or
and Atum,
Anat, who like Astarte is warlike of Astarte; few other goddesses not so frequently mentioned,
the consort of the god of Edom, Amait, etc. (EM Xikkal (Nin-gal),
ff.).
earliest
occurrences
Amurru (which is written of the name 'mwr, 'mivr' II (1292and 'mr') are in the inscriptions of Ramses In the early period they called 122.")) the Nineteenth Dynasty. of Retenu, which may be related the country along the Mediterranean
The
in
lonians. given the land by the early BabyThe country east of the Orontes, extending to or beyond the Euphrates, was called Naharin.
some
way
to the
name
Tidnu
looked upon by the Egyptians with its fenced cities was but its people they regarded as vile. as well inhabited, and civilized, Thutmose III after making a peaceful tour of inspection through Retenu Upper
long series of reliefs made, representing the fauna and flora of what he called "God's land." The inscriptions mention commerce and booty or tribute as coming from Retenu in
a
Retenu
had
of gold, sdver, lead, copper, chariots wrought with gold, feldspar, precious stones, colors, incense, myrrh, cedar, malachite,
the shape
14l'
the
empire
of
the
amoeites.
other woods, cattle, etc. The ancient records of Egypt certainly attest the great wealth of this land. found in the inscriptions are The references to cities of Amurru
ivory and
How many of these cities existed in of the second millennium.4 be determined. B. C. cannot the third and fourth millennium for believing that one There reasons are at least figured quite history. The refin the earliest period of Egyptian erence prominently
texts made above to Byblos in connection with the Pyramid (ca. 3000 B. C), or the recognition that city received as early as E 2000 B. C. in having her Ba'alath venerated in Egypt (MiillerM
154),would
and
alone
be suggestive
a
a great as city, of its importance Shechem, it should also be one. very ancient in in connection with an Egyptian campaign
Dynasty.
The unwarlike attitude of the Egyptians, prior to the aggression of the Semites, is responsible for the few references to the Amorite Few land in the early period. and brief as they are, they furnish
us
in the later period; but even fuller references occur have these enable us to picture the life and activity that must pulsated in this region in the earlier millenniums.
Suefru of the Third Dynasty, at the beginning of the third millennium B. C, mentions bringing forty ships filled with cedar wood This is the earliest naval expedition on the open from Lebanon. that is known sea {BAR I, 146). Sahure
against
4
2743-27316
dispatched
at
fleet
Phoenician
been
coast.
relief discovered
Abushir
by work collected and discussed in the well known Europa. Cf. also Burchardt. FremdAltkanaandischen unci Paton, Egyptian Records ivorte, and of Travel in Western Asia. 6 tian The writer is not entitled to independent judgment as regards EgypThese
Miiller, Asien The dates used are taken from Breasted 's History chronology. of Egypt, which is in accord with the Berlin school. These are much shorter on than those of Petrie and other Egyptologists who account of certain known believed by the Egyptians some were evidences, and of which themselves,
hold
of Egyptian
civilization
were
much
earlier.
XIV.
EGYPT
AND
AMUBRU.
1*3
the four of Ms ships filled with Semitic prisoners from shows Phoenician coast cities. This is the earliest known representation the earliest picture of Amorites who are of sea-going ships, and sailors.7 clearly distinguishable from the Egyptian of the Sixth Dynasty, about two centuries later, in the B. reign of Pepi I (2590-2570 C), had been sent five times against In a sixth expedithe "sand-dwellers" tion of Southern Palestine. in troop ships to the back of the height of the he crossed over Uni,
ridge
on
the
his army When of the "sand-dwellers." This is the first he smote all the revolters. invasion of Palestine. (BAR I, 311 ff.)
tale of Sinuh'e, the Egyptian, which relates his adventures in the time of Sesostris I (1980-1935 B. C), throws most valuable Palestine in the twentieth century. This nobleman light upon of high rank had accompanied the young coregent Sesostris on a successful the death the Libyans, when the news against campaign of I reached the camp. Without the aged king Amenemhet any of Sesostris hurried secretly back to the capital, but announcement,
for the message, accidentally overheard apparently fled eastward across the Delta into the desert. political reasons, On arriving at the frontier fortress he eluded the watches on the
wall.
Sinuhe, who
After
days
was
He took him to who had been in Egypt and who recognized him. his people. Later he was land to another one sent from until he came to Byblos. He finally reached Qedem where he spent a Then Ammi-enshi, the sheik of Upper Tenu (i. e. year and a half.
Retenu), brought
thou nearest Egyptians who
forth, saying: "Happy art thou with me; for Sinuhe was the speech of Egypt," known to the
him
with him. He entered the service of the Amorite chieftain, became the tutor of his children, married his eldest daughter, and was allowed to
were
the choicest of his lands. The goodly land named Yaa figs and vines. ' ' More plentiful than water was its wine, yielded its honey, plenteous its oil. All fruits were its copious was upon
trees.
select from
Barley
was
there and
spelt; without
Sahure,
end
Vol.
all cattle."
He
Burchardt,
Grabdenkmal
des Konigs
II.
144
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
was
men
the mighty appointed sheik of the tribe. His children became his consideration for caravans of his tribe. His hospitality and In his old age longing to were such that he boasted of them.
his native land, and be embalmed ger after death, he sent a messento forgive him and allow with a petition praying the Pharaoh On receiving a gracious rescript, he handed over him to return.
see
his property
set out
for Egypt,
where
he
was
which
doubtless
gives
true
a
of Sesostris III (1887-1849 B. C.) of the Twelfth Dynasty, Sebek-khu, his commandant, on a marauding expedition, in Retenu. This is the district called Sekmen or pillaged a place invasion of northern Amurru first Egyptian of which there is a
It may have been prompted record. the Amorites, to which power Egypt I 680 f.).
what
found in a tomb of a governor mural painting was Khnum-hotep, of Sesostris III, named which throws considerable in this era. light upon the land of Amurru It depicts the Semitic women and children, who are visit of thirty-seven men, Generally the Egyptians despised the 'Amu, Asiatics, called 'Amu. A very
important
is the usual designation for the dwellers of Palestine. The Amu headed by the chief of the highlands, Abesha, who is are A kilted attendant leads an depicted presenting a fine wild goat. which
antelope.
The
people
are
the
women
besides
wearing
upon
a
The
scene
it would
is playing One man socks. are tied to the backs of asses. possessions picture of a highly civilized people, the equivalent Egypt possessed, at least from of that which
depicted
with
their appearance.
inscription reads: "The arrival, bringing Their thirty-seven Asiatics ('Amu) bring to him.
The
is the I
same
as
the Hebrew
Abshai.
B. (1580-1557 C), in recording the siege of the city Hatwaret (Avaris) and its capture, after which he pursued the Hyksos into Asia to the city Sharuhen (Josh.19: 6),furnishes us
Ahmose
XIV.
EGYPT
AND
AMURRU.
145
following the Asiatic rule with the first glimpse of what took place there is such a paucity of the Hyksos, concerning which unfortunately to Manetho their last the Hyksos According data. made of fell Sharuhen being driven out of Egypt. It is thought, according to a record of after a siege of six years. into I then pushed northward that Ahmose Ahniose-Pen-Nekkbet, Syria, and invaded Zahi {BAR II, 1 ff.).
stand at Avaris before
Thutmose
I, about
1530
B. C,
invaded
Naharin
as
far
as
the
prisoners. slaughtering his foe, and taking numberless he set up his boundary tablet, bank of the Euphrates On the west inscription of his son Thutmose which fact is ascertained from the
Euphrates, III
(BAR
H, 81
f.).
1490 B. C, conducted a campaign far probably as Niy on the Euphrates
in "Retenu
Thutmose
the Upper,"
II, about
as
(BAR
II,
125).
Following of Kadesh including of inactivity on the part of Egypt, the king of Zahi, succeeded in stirring up all the allied kingdoms Thutmose III (1479Mitanni east of the Euphrates.
a
period
1447 B. C.) at the head of his army moved upon the strong fortress in the plain of Esdraelon the road which guarded at Megiddo Here defeated, after the coalition was between the Lebanons. Thutmose the cities northward marched and captured which
Yenoam,
the thoroughfare which commanded and Herenkern, These cities he dedicated to Anion. between the Lebanons. by Thutmose III throws The record of the spoil taken at Megiddo interesting light upon the wealth of that district. He records having Xuges 191 foals, 6 stallions, 924 chariots, 200 received 2,041 mares, 502 bows, 1,929 large cattle, 2,000 small cattle, and suits of armor, Although 20,500 white small cattle, perhaps the people goats. living in the vicinity of Megiddo can scarcely be classed as nomads, wealth
from
whom
was
taken
great
possessed
On
he received submissive kings and gathered sent gifts. The reliefs of his third campaign, depict the flora and fauna for his fourth campaign
of Syria, which
are
above, Annals
moved
against
the northern
captured
Arvad,
seized
L46
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
Having returned by water. gained he landed the south country and the coast on his sixth expedition, his army of the Eleutkeros, and marched at Simyra by the mouth
some
Phoenician
ships, and
fortified city in the north end of the valley by water. surrounded side of the Orontes, and was After a siege of several months this formidable city was captured. he spent in his seventh campaign The balance of this season and This from the coast again, and engaged he expected of provisions for the campaigns Kadesh. in Xaharin, the district beyond
Simyra
On his eighth campaign, two years later, he captured Qatna and Aleppo must also have fallen, for he pushed into Xaharin Senzar. to the "Height where he fought a great battle. Many of Man," He then turned towns captured and laid waste. of Xaharin were towards
the king of where he fought his foe, perhaps into that land, and Mitanni; after which he crossed the Euphrates tablet. On his return to the west shore of the set up his boundary
Carchemish,
I, alongside of river he found the tablet of his father, Thutmose The capture of the city of Xiy, a little which he placed his own. his work, after which to the south on the Euphrates, completed Babylon, as brought tribute to his camp. the princes of Xaharin Following his the Hittites, also sent gifts at this time. two enormous of the ten years, he erected at Karnak achievements ' ' Thutmose who crossed the great bend obelisks which he inscribed (Euphrates) with might and with victory at the head of Xaharin
well
as
' '
now
III again in Zahi, putting in the lower down a revolt. Two years later at Araina, perhaps Orontes valley, he defeated another coalition formed by his Xaharin foe. Several years after this he again chastised South Lebanon; found
Thutmose
at which
time
Cyprus, Arrapahitis
His seventh and last campaign was to revolt, his allies of Xaharin and especially the king of Tunip which resulted in the destruction of that city and the subjugation (BAB II, 391 ff.). of the country
The
was
and
most
important
on one
inscribed
III his
XIV.
EGYPT
AND
AMURKTJ.
147
annals, in which long lists of peoples and Amorite towns are found. The striking fact is that in spite of all the vicissitudes which this land suffered through conquests of these and migrations, many in use in late Biblical times, and remain unchanged names were at
the present time. knowledge that some the idea of
"
This
much
fact, considered in connection with the in the early period, suggests cities are known greater antiquity for the civilization than is
C), the
son
but
and when all Naharin May of the following year he fought at Shemesh-Edom against the Lebanon, whom he defeated. A littlelater, after a skirprinces of mish
one
year,
near
the Orontes, He
its sovereign.
he reached Niy, which city acclaimed him punished the city of Ikathi, and at Tikhsi he
he hanged on reachprinces of that district,whom captured seven ing Egypt. As his father and grandfather had done, he set up a in Naharin his northern tablet somewhere memorial marking In the vicinity of Napata he set up a stele marking his He drove before him in triumphal procession, southern boundary. to Memphis, 550 nobles, 240 wives, golden vessels as he proceeded
boundary.
the weight of 1660 pounds, copper, nearly 100,000 pounds, horses and 300 chariots (BAR II, 780 ff.).
tn
210
Thutmose
boundaries
the C.) apparently maintained the Asiatic empire established by his father. Mention of is made Naharin, against which one was conof campaign ducted. He refers to cutting cedars in Retenu, and proclaimed (1420-1411
"conqueror
IV
B.
His father had secured for him in of Syria." the daughter king of Mitanni, in order to marriage of Artatama, She was Mutestrengthen his alliance with that country. named in Egypt; the mother to the muya and became of the successor throne
himself
Amenhotep
emperors.
(1411-1375 B. C.)
an
was
untitled woman a position of great influence during were such that he was not obliged to carry Amurru, for he had little occasion for anxiety He throughout supremacy unchallenged
married
the last of the great Tiy, who occunamed pied the reign. Circumstances
on
from
warfare his
with
subjects.
enjoyed
Syria, Babylonia,
Assyria, Mitanni,
and
Alashia,
with
whose
rulers he maintained
148
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
learn this, not from his monuthe friendliest of relations. We mental little or no light upon the situation, records, which throw
but from
and on in the latter days of his long reign that trouble appeared in Syria. invaded Mitanni, and the provinces of Hittites from Cappadocia
Letters which contain official the so-called Amarna correspondence hand, between this ruler and his successor, the one on the other the rulers of the nations referred to. It was only
Orontes, and began the absorption of Syria. in the conspiracy, and Ubi, the region Vassal Amorite princes were The Hittites and the Habiri, their was threatened. of Damascus, began to invade the land. allies,mercenaries or
Egypt
on
the lower
subjects,
During
of Ihnaton, the dissolution of the finally absorbed by the Asiatic empire took place, and it was Hittites. On his accession Dushratta of Mitanni and Burra-Buriash of Babylon the Pharaoh.
IV
B. (1375-1358 C),
hotep and sent gifts, but apparently Amenof the Hittites, did the same littledesire of maintaining the old relations with Seplel, had for the Hittites had already begun to encroach upon his land.
With
son
the assistance of the unfaithful vassal Abdi-Ashirta Aziru, who headed an Amorite kingdom the upper on
and Itakama who had taken Kadesh, the Hittites, with the aid of The faithful vassals the Habiri, steadily advanced southward. one of the Pharaoh after another succumbed until the entire land
was
lost to Egypt
a
Besides
the Amarna
tions monument single Egyptian of this reign gives instrucregarding the disposition of Asiatics whose towns had been to settle in Egypt plundered and destroyed, and who had come
letters,
(BAR
III, 10
Seti I
chastisement
common
the lapse of half a century, records his of the Bedouin in southern Palestine, who were ing makPalestinians. After this he capcause against the tured
in the plain of Esdraelon, and erected a victory tablet in the Hauran; to at which time the princes of the district came him and offered their allegiance. Two later he is found years
towns
storming founded
walled city in Galilee called Kadesh, which had been by the Amorites Abdi-Ashirta and Aziru; and later he
a
XIV.
EGYPT
AND
AMUERU.
149
son (Mursili), against Merasar of Seplel, king pushed northward he met in the Orontes valley. It does not of the Hittites, whom that any important decision was seem ment gained, except that the moveLater he made a treaty was checked. of Hittites southward
of peace
Merasar
with
Metella
(BAR
a
a
(Mutallu),who had succeeded his father III, 82 ff.).A few miles south of Tell Ashtarah
found in which Seti I is represented
in Bashan
offering Ramses
attempt
II
(1292-1225B. C),
of Seti I to wrest This occurred in his fourth year, when he move against Metella. He left evidence of his activity the Orontes. on seized Kadesh Beirut in the shape of a stele cut into the rocks overlooking near
the Nakr-el-Kelb
years about twenty after the the land from the Hittites, made his first
Nuges,
Ekereth,
his alliesin Asia Minor, amassed The battle of Kadesh which followed is the first strategy can be studied. The Hittite king by cleverly
manoeuvres,
taken was who The battle was to unawares. undecisive, yet Ramses returned Egypt Several years of and celebrated the event as a triumph. Naharin followed. far as Tunip. was as campaigns conquered After about fifteen campaigns the Hittite king died, and Ramses
flanked
Ramses,
made
peace
and
successor,
(BAR
Merneptah
to the throne.
advanced in years when he came Not long after his ascension he discovered that the Mediterranean peoples, called by the Egyptians, "peoples
among
whom
were
the Theku
and
Peleset
(Philistines),
together with allied peoples, were incursions from making the north and especially Asia Minor ; and were ritory plundering his terin coalition with the Libyans, who were encroaching upon Egypt. This movement resulted in the decline of the Hittite the Egyptians had no further conpoAver in the north, with whom flict. the Libyans, poetic encomium celebrating his victory over his allies from the north Merneptah without mentioning makes
a
In
150
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOKITES.
in the last section to Israel. It reads: "The kings are the overthrown, saying Salam ! Not one holds up his head among Heta is Tehenu, is pacified; plundered is Nine Bows. Wasted
reference Pekanan
(the Canaan)
seized upon is desolated, his seed is not; Egypt ; all lands are united, they are pacified ; every one that is turbulent is bound by King Merneptah, giving life like Ee, every day." In
a
every
evil; carried off is Askalon; is made a thing not existing ; Israel for Palestine has become a widow
Bedouin
frontier official,ention is made of Edomite m in Gen. 47: 1-12), Pithom (cf. allowed to live near
a
order to pasture their cattle (BAR III, 623 ff.). B. III (1198-1167 C.) records in relief,scenes Ramses
of Northern
It shows is called "the city of Amor," five strong cities, one of which by water is Kadesh (BAR IV, surrounded another presumably
Syria and
Asia
Minor.
59
ff.).
Sheshonk
in Israel and of towns Of the total number only about about be identified. can seventy-five are preserved, of which seventeen Beth 'Anath in Galilee is the most northern city recognized; and
sixty
names
who Kgs. 14: 25). (1 list of between fifty and in Judah. hundred one
mentioned by name invaded in the fifth year of Rehoboam he On a large relief found at Karnak
the most southern (BAR IV, 709 ff.). A study of the Egyptian monuments of the early period tends Amurru, to show that considerable influence was exerted from
Arad
in Judah
where
centers a civilization of a high order existed It is recognized that emigrants poured already in an early age. Politically Amurru is not known into Babylonia and Assyria. also to have
in important
one
or
into contact with Egypt in the early period ; nevertheless, it is not impossible, as stated in a previous chapter, that history are to be more of the dark periods in Egyptian
come
explained as being due to encroachments of the Amorites, as we have definite proof, occurred in the history of early Babylonia. In the period prior to the Hyksos rule, that is, before 1700 B. C,
there is
no
evidence
from
the Egyptian
monuments
to show
that
XIV.
EGYPT
AND
AMURRU.
""'
kind of a political union of the different principalities This is due to the extreme Amurru. paucity of references of The Hyksos to the country on the monuments. unquesmovement tionably have on the part of must represented united activity there
was
any
Amorite
kingdoms.
Following
by Thutmose
A
conquest
of the land
monuments of the second millennium, of the Egyptian from other sources, without any knowledge reveals a stability and that suggests a very long permanency of civilization in Amurru The stubborn resistance offered the Egyptian period of development.
study
their strength from time to revived, the amount and character of the booty taken, the have of the tribute received by Egypt, the knowledge we
carried on, besides many other considerations, tend to had a great anticonfirm the idea that the civilization of Amurru quity; that back of the earliest traces of it, there was a chain and development or which covered many centuries.
XV
AMORITES
The Amorites
are
IN
THE
OLD
TESTAMENT
as pre-Israelite regarded in the Old Testament inhabitants of Palestine ; where we get the correct impression that is The term Amorite their history largely belonged to the past. quently but it was also used freused as having an ethnic signification, The Canaanites lived in a collective or geographic sense. hills or high ground (Josh. along the coast, and the Amorites in the
5: 1
18
; etc.) but the terms are frequently used synonymously instances all the inhabitants of the 22 etc.).In some
(Gen.
land, the
Hittites, Jebusites, Hivites, etc., are 7:7), even the Philistines (1 Sam.
the Amorites
are
designated 7:
as
Amorites
(Josh.
instances
listed among
of the country
(Josh.24: 11).
is to the Amorites earliest reference in the Old Testament to Palestine and found in the narrative of the Elamitic campaign the country to the south of it. This took place during the short in Babylonia, in the latter part dominant Elam was period when The
B. C. Chedorlaomer (Kudur-Lagamar), of the third millennium Elam, was by Arioch, king of Ellasar (Larsa), king of accompanied Amraphel (Hammurabi) king of Shinar (Babylon),and Tidal king of Goyyim (perhaps Guti),(Gen. 14: 1). These kings made
war
Shinab with Bera, king of Sodom, Birsha, king of Gomorrah, king of Admah, king of Zeboiim, and the king of Bela Shemeber is Zoar). All these joinedtogether in the vale of Sid(the same dim (the same is the Salt Sea). Chedorlaomer and the kings that with him smote (probably Tell 'Ashtara in
were
the Rephaim
in Ashteroth-Karnaim
Bashan), the
Zuzim
in Ham,
the Emim
in Shaveh-kiriathaim, and the Horites in Mount Seir, unto El-paran, These kings returned and came which is by the Wilderness. to Em-mishpat is Kadesh) and smote all the country of (thesame
the Amalekites The
and also the Amorites that dwelt in Hazazon-tamar. latter place is identified in 2 Chron. 20 : 2 with En-gedi, which
(152)
XV.
AMORITES
IN
THE
OLD
TESTAMENT.
153
situated in the high cliffsat the mouth of the gorge of Wady Ghor running into the Dead Sea at about the middle of the west between bank. Some scholars, however, identify it with Thamara
was
Elath
has been identified about fifty miles Kadesh and Hebron. to Kadesh-barnea When the Israelites came south of Beer-sheba. it is said that they had reached unto the hill country of the Amois said to have kingdom rites (Deut. 1: 19, 20). Sihon's Amorite
the Gulf of Akabah (see below). This invasion, it the east side of the on seem, passed through the country would fication If the identiJordan and the Dead Sea, and extended southward. correct, the should prove with Gomorrah of Humurtu Babylonian army of Dungi at an earlier time had also visited this reached
unto
of the four quarters," which he acquired, points to activity in Amurru. rite, dwelt by the oaks of Mamre, the AmoThe statement that Abram
region.
Certainly
as
stated above,
brother of Eshcol and Aner (Gen. 14: 13),refers to Amorites in southern Palestine (Numb. 13: 23 b). living near Hebron to land of the Moriah." whither Abraham "The was commanded
take Isaac and offer him for a burnt offering upon one of the mountains, "on district. In his journey, to refer to the Lebanon seems
his eyes and saw the place afar off." The Peshitto version reads "the land of the Amorites" instead The Septuagint translator not of "the land of the Moriah." The the text, used the words "the highland." understanding
writer of 2 Chron. 3: 1, who refers to "the mountain of the Moriah," having the temple hill of Jerusalem in mind, apparently to have based his statement upon this passage seems after the name had been corrupted. The Septuagint version here reads it correctly "of the Amorites."
he lifted up
The
Hebrew
If the shortened form Moriah had actuarticle, "the Moriah." ally been used as well as Amoriah, it would interesting be an in cuneiform, where the initial letter also in parallel to the name instances has disappeared some (seeChapter VII).
Isaac
before
dying
informs
Joseph
that
he
which he had taken from the Amorites : thee Shechem above thy brethren, which I took out of the hand dition of the Amorite (Gen.48: 22). This trawith my sword and bow" apparently
Shechem
had
sons.
154
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
There Amorite
is
Jewish
legend
by
over
seven
them
in the time of Moses continued to be dominant on The river Arnon the east side of the Jordan and the Dead Sea. Mowing into the Dead Sea "was the border of Moab between Moab
Amorites
and
the Amorite"
and Israel smote refused to let Israel pass through his border; to Jabbok, even him and took his land, from Arnon unto the children the city dwelt in all the cities,in Heshbon Israel of Amnion.
thereof (Numb. 21:21-26). Jazer, of Sihon, and all the towns by in this district,is also mentioned another city of the Amorites as name and went up by captured (v.32). And Israel "turned
way
' ' out against them. of Bashan, where Og king of Bashan came defeated, and Israel possessed his land (vv.33-35). He also was Og, king of Bashan, is called a king of the Amorites, it Although
of the remnant
of the Rephaim,"
great
is said to have kings" Amorite territory of these "two Arnon even unto extended from Aroer on the edge of the valley of Sion (also called Sirion and Senir, i. e. Hermon), and all Mount the Arabah (which is the Gulf of Akaunto the sea of the Arabah
4:
47-49). The
and the Edom
two
kingdoms
therefore
Gilead, Moab,
Jordan
had
been
Israel crossed the Jordan and came the men of Jericho, the Amorites,
to Jericho, fought
and the inhabitants of Gibeon, of the who are said later in the time of David to be of the remnant Amorites (2 Sam. 21: 2), fought and defeated five Amorite kings, Adoni-zedek of of Hebron, Piram of Jerusalem, Hoham namely Jarmuth, Japhia of Lachish, and Debir of Eglon (Josh. 10: 3 ff.). throws light The older population of Judah being called Amorite
on was
(Josh.24:
8-11, 15 and
18).
Jerusalem: "the in Ezekiel concerning the passage a Hittite" thy father and thy mother was (Ezek.16:
Amorite
3).
XV.
AMORITES
IX
THE
OLD
TESTAMENT.
"'""!"
also dwelt in Heres, Aijalonand in Shaalbim, and into the hill country, but the tried to force the children of Dan
The
Amorites
latter prevailed and made them tributary (Judg. 1 : 34 ff.). "While we have knowledge of petty principalities of of a number the Amorites the west side of the Jordan on there is no evidence
of
may
kingdom
or
kingdoms
such
are
as
east side.
When
excavations
on
the there
remains of a much earlier Amorite civilization Palestine. than has yet been found in Western borne by Amorites Unfortunately are menonly a few names tioned in the Old Testament. Some these like Adoni-zedek, of
can
be discovered
Japhia, Debir
The
be said to be Semitic, while others remain be said of the five kings mentioned same can
undetermined. in the
Elamitic
campaign
(see Chapter
II).
XVI
ASSYRIA
The
country
AND
AMURRU
to have
been
seems of Assyria, owing to its proximity to Amurru, extensively influenced by that land. This follows
study of the religion and nomenclature of the Assyrian the country settled inscriptions both early and late. Not only was by Amorites, but they kept pouring into it in various periods, as they did into Babylonia, and Egypt. In spite of the fact that the excavations conducted in Assyria have not been inconsiderable, littlehas been found that throws light from
a
The inscriptions of Shalof the land's history. furnish us with references to an early I and Esarhaddon maneser king named Ushpia (alsowritten Aushpia), the traditional builder the temple of Ashur ; and to Kikia, who is of E-harsag-kurkurra, Ashur (Chron.I regarded as the traditional builder of the wall of 122, 140). Also in a late chronicle we learn that Ilu-shuma, king against Su-abu, who is considered to be Sumuof Assyria, marched I (ibid. p. 129). of Babylon abum, the founder of the First Dynasty Assyria from The first contemporaneous record bearing upon is a military despatch of Hammurabi, Babylonian sources which
on
the beginnings
refers to his troops and the country of Assyria (LIE III p. 14), to which in this period was subject Babylon. The earliest known references to Assyria in the inscriptions belonging late period, the question as to comparatively the origin of its civilization has frequently been touched upon. it has been customary, Heretofore with the Biblical tradition of to regard it as having been an offshoot from Babylonia, Nimrod,
to such
a
largely because
and certain cultural of the script and language The early inhabitants of the country, whether Semitic elements.1 nian use or non-Semitic, did make of what we call the Semitic Babylolanguage, the Sumero-Akkadian system of writing. and
1
See Rogers
History
of Babylonia
and
(156)
Assyria
XVI.
ASSYRIA
AND
AMURRXT.
157
Moreover
the Sumerian
temple
names,
the many
Sumerian
terms
ence influto Sumerian used for religious rites,etc., point unmistakably by direct contact at some previous time ; but whether this was indirectly by contact with the Semites who or with the Sumerians lived in Eastern
or
Amurru,
sources,
who
had
been
from
both
cannot
be determined.
Orient-Gesellschaft conducted by the Deutsche the site of ancient Ashur, on the Tigris, yielded at Kalah-Shergat, besides inscriptions, the earliest known antiquities of that land. debris In the lowest stratum, separated by charred which was
The
excavations
from
the
one
above, there
were
found
us
of the shorter head, the eyes with shell, the Sumerian physiognomy, and the treatment of the garments, make it reasonable to think that prior to the period when the foundations of the temple of Ishtar
at Ashur
were
Babylonia.
The
inlaying
Sumerian time
under in their original home, the influence of the Sumerian craftsmen before they settled Assyria, is another question that cannot be determined at present.
In Amurru
(see King
the Assyrians
were
the
use
temples
the writer proposed, after a consideration of 138 ff., Semitic deities in the early names of certain West of individuals, that the early Assyrian and culture, with
are
which
we
familiar,
arose,
migration
from
the West.
publications of Johns and also accepted by Luckenbill ; who, however, holds that the earliest Semites of Assyria were borne in on what he calls the first of the successive migrations from the desert of Arabia into the Euphrates Valley, which movement of Semites brought Sargon and Naram-
extensively influenced by It is interesting to note that recent King accord with this idea.2 This is
or was
Sin
(ca.2500
B.
the writer feels constrained from the results presented in this work.
2
for the was when supremacy 28, p. 154). With this view to differ in every detail, as is evident
Johns Ancient
Assyria
p. 10;
King
HB
p. 137.
l.")S
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
It has
been
other influence from this quarter It is not impossible that the Mitanni people has been pointed out. into Aram. It would that these kings had already pushed seem
no
traditional suggested that the two earliest known Hittite-Mitannian Ungnad BA (cf. and Kikia, were
lived prior to the time of the Ur Dynasty, for the rulers of Ur, who bore the title"king of the four quarters," would hardly have permitted Since the territory north of Akkad. an upon encroachment Shalim-ahum (KTA 60), Ka(?)-sha-Ashir preceded Ilu-shuma and who is thought
to have
been
contemporary
of the Amorite
First Dynasty
reigns would be near the thrones of Nisin and Larsa,3 on fresh ingress of Amorites at this time. If the Semites
founder
who lived in Assyria prior to this period were Babylonians, they have left no traces of their culture which can be except the use of the language and said to be peculiarly their own, In an inscription found at Ashur, Ashir-nirari (about 1800 script. B.
Some
of is very probably another designation of the Amorite This is confirmed by the reference of Tiglath-pileser storm-deity. it as I to this very temple in Ashur, in which he mentions "the
the storm" temple
Babylonia.
stated below
in Chapter
XVII,
of the god
Amurru,
p.
mean
the temple
house"
if we
(King
Annals
87). The
of the elder Bel, the divine intelligible becomes passage is the elder bet nmtati,
or
understand Enlil.
The
it to
that Amurru
is not known to have been worshipped In Cappadocia, at a time probably contemporaneous the Ur dynasty, hence earlier than the earliest
Ashur
known
from
Ashur,
the deity
was
as prominently worshipped. referred to XIII), the two regions had certain customs in common;
Besides,
ter (seeChapand
was
we
Esarkaddon
refers to a king Ellil-bani, son of Adasi, who TJra-iniitti, but he seems to have been the ruler by in other words
a
made
name
that
Babylonian.
XVI.
ASSYRIA
AND
AMTTBBU.
159
have
locality influenced for believing that either the one intermediate an the other, or there was civilization, of which we have at present no trace, that influenced both. As mentioned also,
reason
the
of the early rulers of Assyria, being constituted with Adad, Dagan, the Amorite and Shamshi, show that gods Ashur, Besides, the earliest temple Amorite. they were of probably
names
which
we
have
knowledge
was
erected to Adad
and Anu,
who
were
also Amorite gods (see Chapter XVII). into Assyrian king who records that he came The earliest known III, who ruled Shamshi-Adad was contact with the land Amurru He calls himself sar hissati, which is usually about 1600 B. C. translated "king of the universe," and informs us that he devoted his energies to the region between the Tigris and the Euphrates (KTA 2 Obv. 5-9). Further, he states that he set up a memorial stele in the country of La-ab-a-an (Lebanon), on the shore of "the
great
sea"
2, IV:
13 ff.). He
does
conflict in this part of the land, which Hyksos would indicate that he probably ruled prior to the time the became Amurru driven out of Egypt, after which Western were
not mention
Ashur-uballit, who
descendent
lived
about
1400
B.
C,
the lands conquered with having Arik-den-ilu 3 Obv. 33 and 4 Obv. 25). His grandson etc. (KTA lands to the west the bordering of and north-west conquered Sutti peoples including the Aramaeans Assyria, (Ahlami),and
II, his son, 3 1: 21). Adad-nirari about 1300 B. C, who "king of the universe," many strongholds conquered called himself including Harran far as Carchemish as along the Euphrates,
{KTA
13). Shalmaneser I also makes the same claim (KTA 13 Bev. Ill: 4). Tukulti-Inurta, about 1260 B. C, claimed to be
"king
( KTA
5 Obv.
(KTA 17 Obv. of the universe, king of the four quarters" than the former.4 1-2),the latter title being more comprehensive The four quarters, is well known, Akkad as on the embraced
the north, Elam on on the east, and Amurru on south, Shubartu the west ; but the latter country could only have been conquered in part, for it was during this time that the Egyptians and the
4
For
see
Luckenbill
AJSL
160
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
contesting for the supremacy of the land along the is made Mediterranean ; and in fact no mention of Assyria being involved in any of the references to the control of this territory
Hittites
were
in the Egyptian
later
on,
inscriptions
(see Chapter
XIV).
From
little
in the time of Tiglath-pileser I, about 1100 B. C, references found in that ruler's inscriptions. to this part of Amurru are it would seem, Amurru, with Mitanni already occupying Aram,
by neighboring dominated in the sixteenth century was completely The Hittites had encroached upon the land from the north powers. Egypt, after driving back the Hyksos, controlled and the north-east;
the western part of the country along the Mediterranean to the Euphrates, even crossing it ; and Assyria had continued to hold by raids or conquests at least part of the eastern region. into conflict over the While the Egyptians and the Hittites came
western any
on
lands, Egypt
and Assyria
do not
seem
to have
although Assyria, III, sent costly gifts, which were ship representing tribute. The friend-
experienced desiring to be
to have been greatly desired by both also seems of Egypt III, as is shown Assyria and Babylonia in the time of Amenhotep inscriptions of letters. Moreover, the Assyrian by the Amarna the latter half of the second millennium show us that repeated conquests
in the part of supremacy maintain Amurru which that nation tried to hold. Shamshi-Adad, the earliest ruler mentioned above who claims to have been solicitous for the welfare of the land between the Tigris
were
necessary
to
is doubtless the ruler bearing that name who and the Euphrates, built the temple at Tirqa on the Euphrates (seeChapter X). He is the only early Assyrian king who claims to have done more than ing conquer and subdue ; and it must be admitted that it is an interestdiscovery to have found evidence of the constructive activity king in this region in the shape of the votive of this Assyrian tablet referred to in Chapter XI. In the inscriptions of the following period we learn that Tiglathtory who had extended greatly the terripileser I (about 1125-1100), ; of Assyria, sailed in ships of Arvad upon the Mediterranean
he called "the sea great of Amurru" which Although the title "king of the four quarters"
{KB
I 48:
8).
included Amurru
XVI.
ASSYKIA
AND
AMUKRXJ.
161
inscriptions prior to this time do not mention Ashir-bel-kala in his inscription mentions Amurru. the name the gods of Amurru (King AKA p. 153). Ashur-nasir-pal refers to receiving tribute from the kings to the great sea of Amurru, and
(see above),Assyrian
the shore of the sea from Tyre, Sidon, Byblos, Mahallata, Maisa, Kaisa, Amurru, (KB 1 108 : 85 and 86). Adad-nirari and Armada Hatti, Amurru, Tyre, Sidon, Edom, Omri III says he conquered
on
(Israel)and
Samaria
(KB
I 190:
11), showing
informs
us
Sargon
that he
in which wide land of Amurru, 22, 46; Annals (X: 17, XIV:
Amurru included
he included
52).
the cities of Philistia and Phoenicia, as well as Moab, Beth-Amon, (KB II 90). Ashurbanipal and Edom also included Palestine in Amurru.5 The references show that in the
Assyrian
Amurru
same as
inscriptions
varied, and in the Old
of the signification,
name
the
confines
Testament;
as
moreover,
the
is usually
found
See Tofteen
AJSL
1908 p. 31.
XVII
THE An
DEITIES
OF
AMURRU
would embrace exhaustive study of the religions of Amurru the ancient inscriptions that have been discovered in not" only all but all the light that can be the land, including the Old Testament, gathered from
contemporaneous
sources.
It would
include also
certain elements of belief that survive at present, which represent the unconscious inheritance of previous millenniums ; also sacred rites and practices.1 sites,objects, The purpose of the present effort being to establish the existence ence of an antiquity for the Aniorite civilization and to show its influother nations, it must suffice to discuss briefly only such details of the early history as the contemporaneous records offer ; the religion of the Amorand instead of attempting to reconstruct
upon
be an impossibility, little more would that we have of the be done besides presenting the knowledge can In such a review it is deities that they worshipped. prominent ites, which
at the present necessary
to bear
in mind
that many
different nations
or
tribes
To what some of which were non-Semitic. occupied this territory, extent these peoples' religion influenced the Amorite, and whether foreign, cannot any of the deities we now consider as Semitic were
be determined.
as
Then
it is known had
their
own
in Babylonia, worshipped
in other districts under other names. The so many storm-gods, and of the deities of the land were identified with each other, would seem to confirm this. Even
was
as a storm-deity, a god regarded by the Hebrews of in the Certain groups the mountains. of deities are mentioned Aramaean inscriptions, as for example in the Panammu tion, inscrip-
Jahweh
Hadad,
El, Resheph,
; itis nevertheless
Small but valuable conipends of the early religion of Canaan The Religion of Ancient Palestine, and Paton The Early Religion
1
are
Cook
of Israel.
(162)
XVII.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMURBU.
163
impossible
at the present
"
pantheon or pantheons instances the attributes of the gods, and set forth discuss in some in a general way the facts that can be gathered concerning them. But this knowledge
the deities, or coming from contemporaries who
of a than
had adopted
referred to them, very often shows such modifications is usually regarded as the original conceptions of the of what deities, that its value appears to be only relative in arriving at permanent conclusions concerning
Amorite In not the
sex,
nature
gods. a few instances it has been ascertained that the character to other after they had been transported changed of gods was lands. These changes may have been due to various causes. The
deity of the mountains when brought into the plains would gradually lose his mountainous A storm-god transported character. to a rainless land would naturally have other attributes emphasized. If Ea "lord is Amorite,
as
is claimed, and the ideogram En-ki, indication of the nature of the god in indigenous, we can only conclude that
when brought to Eridu in southern Babylonia, a city that had been built on land regained from the sea, that he became a god of the springs and the deep.
was
it
Rivalry,
a
or prejudice,
contempt
may
have
been
quite differently in a in the land where autochthonous. Urra looked upon as the god of pestilence, plague, Ne-Uru-Gal, Urra-Gal, or Urru, the Nergal of well as of plague and city of the dead, we should
as
for this conception of the deity. He, as well as other deities, who originally partook of the same nature as the god Uru or Urru like the storm-god Adad (see or Amurru, are gods of war
below).
as one
who
reasonable
storm-deity is naturally a god of destruction, as well has considerable to do with vegetation. It would seem to infer that the idea that this deity was a god of
plagues, pestilences, and death had developed in the land which had from time to time suffered violence at the hands of the hordes him. Such a god of the invaders, perhaps ruthwho worshipped
164
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
regarded as rasubbu, "the terrible." Nergal, although have continued to be may pantheon, adopted in the Babylonian it is "With this understanding recognized as a god of the West. less, was
how a god of the Amorites, to difficult comprehend again and again invaded Babylonia, would be regarded in the West deity. Doubtless the same conception arose
not
who
as
had
a
concerning
had war and Assyrian gods, who calamity so often upon the people ; but unfortunately we way at present of determining this.
the
Babylonian
no
modification which the original character of certain deities suffered was the change in sex, a question which Barton (See Semitic Origins pp. 120, and others have fully discussed.
191 ff. the goddess Ashirta was carried into Arabia, became a godshe became the god Athtar ; and the god Shamash dess. In the Nippur Name Syllabary it would seem Shamash that
Another
etc.).When
in the
name
(UMBS Tu-li-id-dSamsi(-si)
feminine.
XI
1,
39)
was
Urta, the goddess of the Amorites In-Urta stood for masculinized, although the name
as
a
also in Babylonia,
a
well
credited with an androgynous writers of the late period, but the existence of in the Semitic world is yet to be proved.
In the development
centres
we
of sex the idea of the True, Venus and female. character by certain ancient
a
hermaphrodite
lonian of theological systems in the various Babyfind many attempts at identifying one god with in
a a
Such a practice was another. perfectly natural foreign gods were which constantly filtering. As
land
into
result the syllabaries deities contain many formations, such as of syncretistic Shar-Maradda, AmarUru-Mash, Shar-Girru, Nannar-Gir-Gal,
Utug,
as
etc.
Such
formations
were
known
Hadad-Eimmon,
Jahweh-Sabaoth,
Jahweh-
Shalom,
etc. El "god,"
form
used in connection with deities of different localities. It seems Malik or Melek, probably the same as Molech of the Old Testament, was another such appellation. In only a few instances
Ba'alat,
XVII.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMUEBU.
165
can
the
names
was
tions represented by such designato cite a single example, the Ba'al of Harran Ba'al became Sin. In Egypt the name of a
are
deity, as period.
appears
for Marduk Bel, another name is another Adon "lord" such frequently in Assyrian texts, as Abu "father"
This
is found
in many Abi-shua'
Old
,
etc.,
of
regard as a designation of "the father-uncle," borne which some was by the husbands practiced, is also of a wife when polyandry 'Ammi-el, cf. 'Am-ram, used instead of a deity in personal names,
etc.2 Uru is the In view of the fact that the name or of Amurru "god Uru" as same that of the land, and that Aloros stood at head of the Chaldean mythological list of antediluvian kings, it the
'Ammi-hud,
would
seem
of our it seems Amorite best at this time to religion of the consider the deities alphabetically. is one deities of the Western Adad prominent of the most of knowledge
the head
Semites.
is found
He is known
written
as
Hadad.
The
name
in cuneiform: A-da-ad, Ad-du, Ad-di, A-ad-du, A-da-di, A-da-da, Da-ad-da, Da-di, Ha-di, etc. Another name of this deity, perhaps arisen as an epithet, is Ramman, also written Ramimu, Adad, Rbnmon,
43
Vemxav
(2 Kgs.
5:
18),etc. (seeDeimel
Pantheon
Babylonicum,
f.).
in the Hittite
together with Shamash, figures prominently treaty, where both bear the title "lord of heaven." Amarna
Shamash
ammu
of the letters, Abimelech, king of Tyre, likens the Pharaoh to In the Aramaic inscription of King Panand Adad.
one
In
Syria (eighth of northern century),he is mentioned at the head of a list of five gods ; Hadad, El, Resheph, Eekeb-el, and Shamash. In Assyria and Babylonia, to which lands they were lords of divination. In Assyria carried, Shamash and Adad were
2
See Paton's
article on
'Amm
in Encyclopaedia
166
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
common
name mean
name
' '
may
for the early rulers was Shamshi-Adad. ' ' My sun is Adad, but it also may mean
many
The
' '
Sham-
above).
that are of the West lands, including some been likened to Adad of Amurru, namely Dagan of Suki,Adgi of Suhki, H-Hallapu, Bu-We-ir.3
examples of which There are other deities not Semitic, that have
of Amurru,
Teshub
of the nature of Adad largely upon the inscriptions of Babylonia and Assyria, where he tions, was regarded as the weather-god, the god of the tempest, inundato Gods as well as men lightning, and thunder. seemed
are our
We
dependent
for
knowledge
He over the elements. of him because of his power stand in awe time that he was was the lord of abundance at the same of want the rain. His and hunger, which resulted from his withholding destructive
power
find Hammurabi
and we appropriate war-deity; speaking of him as "the mighty bull who gores is meant by the picture of the Doubtless, Adad made
an
him
Egyptian
scene.
the fortress representing a deity in It should be added that Adad's close association because of the very common nation combiespecially
down
in
were
names,
solar-god
Semitic deities, although unlike several other West brought into the Babylonian not identified with any pantheon, was ent. particular centre in Babylonia, at least as far as is known at presAdad, In Assyria temples Ami, Adad. is frequently seen In the art of the seal cylinders, Adad resting his foot upon a bull, or standing entirely upon the animal, which In the same he leads by a leash attached to a ring in its nose. hand he holds
a
was
and
the two
of the earliest Later, Ashur Adad. supplanted deities of the land became Ashur and
one
different, for
breast.
3
See CT
forms
25, 16 and 17 etc., but especially in connection with the many in which the god Amurru occur or Uru (Chapter VII).
XVII.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMUREU.
167
living in Babylonia,
as
is shown
by the impressions
in the time of the First Dynasty, is an indication was the worship of the deity at this time.
as
in the land of Suhi, Adad of the storm-god in the name according to the list of gods CT 25, 16 : 19. It occurs Ad-gi-ilu of the Assyrian documents (ADD 17 : 3),and in the name texts (BE X 55: 1),which Ad-gi-si-ri-sa-bad-du of the Murashu
Adgi
is
name
"DrYJWTN. is also written in the Aramaic on the tablet, endorsement to be syncretized with Siri, namely In the latter name the god seems Adgi-Siri. by the It has been previously Uru. Amurru or maintained
Uru, or of the West Semitic deity Amurru writer that the name ently by the Semites, was written differwhen brought into Babylonia For example, the name in different centres. at Babylon
at Cutha appeared Amar-TJtug, probably a syncretistic formation; On the ideographic and it was etc. written Ne-Uru-Gal, Una-Gal,
Chapter VII. see phonetic writings of the name, In studying the inscriptions of the seal impressions on tablets dated in the time of the First Dynasty, one is struck with the number to Amurru individuals who acknowledged (dMarobeisance of
tu). What especially stands out in these seal inscriptions is the (dAN-Mar-tu) The two signs for deity have writing dEl-Amurru
.
been
or
regarded
or
elonim;
representing a Phoenician plural, and it has been read dAn-Mar-tu and regarded
as
read
as a
dim
combination
There can be little doubt but that and Martu.* of Arm the reading is,as stated above, El-Amurru, 'El-TJru (seeAmurru or frequently in the syllabaries of 1909, p. 158). This name appears deities written 'El-Mer (dIlu-Me-ir) and it is another example ; of the prefixing of the word for god to names of deities like 'ElShaddai, 'El 'Elyon, Il-Tammesh, Il-Tehri, Il-Teri,Al-Si', Al-Nashu
p. 4). and Il-Ashirta (Lutz EBL The custom El "god" a prefix to the as of actually pronouncing deities, as the writer has indicated, was name West of apparently Semitic. Moreover, one needs only to consult the names of the p.
4
{Amurru
158),also H-Kanshan,
See Krausz
Eadau
Gotternamen
p. 9, and
Hommel's
p. 56.
holding reads AN-dMAR-TU, highest and oldest Babylonian with the god AN
(BE 28,
p.
41).
168
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
deities of scribes and of individuals to see how extensively Semitic deities were in not only Uru but other West worshipped the time of the First Dynasty (seeChapter VIII).
patron
The Marduk,
were
name as
as regarded 'Uru (TIN), also the Talmudic form of the name Aramaic word for as "sunset" ('uria), well as other considerations, made it seem ever, How100 ft'.). a solar deity (Amu mi that the god Ainurru was or be admitted that the West Semitic deity, Amurru the others evolved, Uru, regarded as the original deity from whom indigenous. was primarily a storm-deity in the land where he was
of this deity at Babylon, namely of deities like Nergal, etc., who other names in connection with the sun-gods, considered
it must
is so often by the syllabaries, where his name Transference of the deity from his original equated with Adad. home to the fertile plain between the rivers, where mountainous This is determined
the inhabitants
were
dependent
upon
agriculture,
was
probably
assumed. responsible for the solar traits that were Anu and Antu, the writer has suggested, contrary
opinion that they their origin among
were
to the accepted
Babylonian
the Western
which
are
in the personal tional names revelations at the time the tradiof Chaldeans who made dynasty of Aloros ruled (see Chapter VIII) ; the second by Am/Soj-ros,the third by Ai^cr-ros etc., and the fourth revelation was Anna
or
Ana
probably
is found
by 'Ava)Sa""os. The temple built in honor of Ashur erected or restored about 2400 B. C. was of the gods Anu and Adad, the latter being a West
and
as
Semitic deity;
heretofore lying west former was
of
Assyria
was
held
(see Chapter
XVI),
seems
as not settled by Babylonians but by people from the lands reasonable to infer that the
in Semitic deity. Anu are another West and Dagan addressed the prayer of Ashurbanipal (CraigRel. Texts II 21 : Rev. 2). The laws of Anu and Dagan are referred to by the Assyrian kings. Antu is well known in place
names
in Amurru.
Anathoth,
the
XVII.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMURRU.
169
up, is
in the neighborhood This may be the ancient of Bethzur. by Seti I (BAR. Ill, 114). shrine referred to as a city conquered B anises II mentions a city on the mount (BAR III of Beth-Anoth name was 356). A city in Judah bearing the same also conquered by Sheshonk
'
(BAR
on
IV,
762). Bethany
(writtenin Syriac
Beth
the road to Jericho from Jerusalem, as well as Bethany beyond Jordan may also have been shrines of Anu. As heretofore suggested by Professor Montgomery (see Amtnru
Anl'
N\JJ?JTD
p.
143), Anu
may
be found
An-ram
in the
Samaritan
name
'Aner,
father
written Shamgar of
be an abbreviated name may tained which originally conthat of the goddess. Anu also figures in the nomenclature tablets, of the Cappadocian (RA VIII p. 149), Pi-sa-A-na, and [Id]-sa-A-na cf. Gimil-A-nvm
(Josh. 3: 31)
V {BdbyloniacaI
p. 191, 7
name
appears
in
let tab-
referring to a decision rendered in the "house of the judgment belonging to the god. This some property of Ana," concerning a temple shows that there was of Anu in Cappadocia.
of Antu was carried comparatively early to Egypt. The priesthood of the goddess at Thebes is already mentioned in III. Ramses the time of Thutmose II gave his favorite daughter worship
a
name
The
shown the early period, it must be assumed borrowed from the people of Amurru.
What
worship
seems
to be the most important centre of Anu and Antu is at 'Ana and 'Anatho the Euphrates on (see Chapter
XI)
this quarter
it was
spread
adjoining
carried to Erech in a very for whom the temple called E-Anna Gudea, and Ur-Engur, regarded him
was
Anu
the "lord
as
one
Sumerians
very
The goddess to have been introduced as the consort of Anu. at Erech in the early period ; Ishtar appears It would seem also that Lulubu was another citv in which the wor-
170
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
In the inscription of ship of these deities had been introduced. Annu-banini of an early period, who had erected a statue to Ishtar in the mountain of Batir, the king invokes for it the protection of and Antu, Enlil and Ninlil,Adad and Ishtar, Sin and Shamash, etc. Anu was at Kish, another also early worshipped It is to be noted that the name Semitic centre. of Anu-mutabil, governor of the city of Der, who probably lived about the time of the gods Annu is also compounded with that of the deity. In connection with the question of the origin of the gods it must duced be regarded as significant that the worship of Antu was not introthe First Dynasty,
then it does not at Erech until the Greek period, and even introduced into Nor was the name in the nomenclature. appear Assyria; of Amurru and in Egypt whereas in the broad expanse
we
have Anu
so
much
it left such
an
indelible
impression. regarded by scholars as being originally a sunin the heavens, who became in the god whose great luminary was deity of the the development of later theological systems -chief a In Egypt heavens. the goddess is represented sitting upon throne, with a feathered head-dress similar to the representations has been
She has she is often paired. of Ashirta with whom shield in her right hand and a battle-axe in the left ;
as
She is a warlike goddess and clad in a panther-skin. sensual ; is called lady of heaven, daughter of the sun, etc. (Miiller EM -p.156).
Ashir, whose A-usar, A-sur, is written in cuneiform A-sir, A-sa-ru-um, Semitic script "ItJ'N and As-sur, and in the West in all probability of West Semitic origin {Amurru
name name
(also1DN) was 138 ff.).This conclusion followed the consideration that the
did not appear its prominence and
appears
in early Babylonian nomenclature and because of nician in the early Cappadocian tablets and in the PhoeAshirta inscriptions. Further Aramaic the name
though Ashirta is in of Ashir, even in which Ashir most cases written with ayin, while the few cases inscriptions the name is found in the late Phoenician and Aramaic
to be the feminine
alepli.
seem
was
XVII.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMURRTT.
1~1
interesting confirmation of the assumption that the deity is West Semitic is the fact that Ashar is found in the Amorite Name I Syllabary in the name Ia-[ku]-un-A-sa-ru-wm TJMB8 XI 2 III: 6), An It is to be noted, however, and it is not found in the Akkadian. Hana tablets, or in that the deity is not found in the few known It is to be further noted that the feminine Census. the Harran in these Ashirta or the Assyrian Ishtar do not figure prominently
texts, occurring
once
in the
names
to have been symbol is the solar disc, seems This is probably shown also by the name god, in Assyria. found is Shamash, or "Ashir is my sun," "Ashir Samsi
Asirin the
he is also a mountaintablets, and yet like Amurru "Ashur the god, cf. dAs-swr iht si-ru a-si-ibE-har-sag-kur-kur-ra dwells in 'the temple of the mountain of the exalted god who
Cappadocian
"
world'
great
are
(KTA
3, Rev.
mountain"
a
23),and also Asur sadu rabu "Ashur, the (CT 26, 1: 11). His warlike attributes, which
tation of the solar disc by the represenforth in the passage are well set
"Ashur
up
the enemy,
mighty in battle, who burns his foes, who bursts forth like a
or
decides the battle, and like the snare (AJSL 28 p. 186). of his arms"
certain
Ashirta
complicated and intricate of all problems the names of West Semitic deities, the reason
was
spread
throughout
that in certain lands her sex was changed; in so many different forms. In inscriptions coming from appears Amurru her name in the Amarna Abdi-Asirta appears in the name letters,A-si-ir-ta and As-ra-tio"i{ti,to); in the Moabite inscription it is written 'strt', and in the Phoenician inscriptions 'stilt,'strt,
also 'srh and 'str (late). In found at Ta'anach, belonging
one
of the letters of Ashirti-washur to the Amarna period, the oracle learn that
Since the
of Ashirat
5
is referred to.5
Ta'annek
We
"Solomon
went
after
See Hrozny
Xo. 1:21.
name
172
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
Ashtoreth,
the goddess of the Zidonians" (1 Kgs. 11: 5). In the II with the Hittites, Ashtart is looked upon peace treaty of Eamses The deity also figures prominently a goddess as in of that land. the West Semitic names tablets. of the Cappadocian
the city of Og, king of Bashan (Deut.1 : 14 ; Josh. 9: 10, is mentioned in Gilead, as the etc.) Ashtaroth-Karnaim defeat of the Rephaim (Gen. 14: 5). place of Chedorlaomer's Beeshtarah, the Levitical city in Manasseh (Josh. 21: 27) is
was
Ashtaroth
"Temple of Ashtera," and is thought regarded as Beth 'Ashtera III refers to be identical with Ashtaroth of 1 Ch. 6 : 71. Thutmose
(MiUlerAE
tablets.
162,
313).
name,
alAs-tar-te
In Jerome's
Onomasticon,
two
the nine miles apart, lying between Adara and Abila. Ashtaroth, Karnaim city of Og is placed six miles from Adara. is said to be a town Ashtaroth-Karnaim, the same as apparently lying in the angle formed by the Nahr er-Raqqad and the Yarmuk, which apparently
which Ashtaroth
are
is represented
where the governor is also placed by five miles south of Tell 'Ashtara.
early introduced The earliest there.
name
the Semites
to the
with it,is En-bi-As-tar, a pre-Sargonic lonia in time was Ishtar in Babypronounced although occasionally such "West Semitic forms
as
lonian Esarhaddon) are found. In the early Babyinscription of Anu-banini of Lulubu, Ishtar (dRI) appears the consort of dIM. An inscription of Lugal-tar-si is dedicated
to Anu
name and to dNinni which is a Sumerian of Ishtar. As the her name Sarpanitum. She is also as consort of Marduk appears the consort of Ashur in Assyria, and of other gods, the explanation
Amorite
proper
to read
have
no
for justification
this reading
in any
XVII.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMURRTJ.
173
105 ff.). A Babylonian (See Jastrow BBBA of Sin and Anu. informs that in her us hymn, rewritten in the Greek period, Ashrat, and regarded as "the was original home, where her name the consort of Amurru {dMar-Tu-e), goddess of the plain," she was "lord of the mountain" (SBH, 139: 143-5). Ishtar shows that she A study of the epithets of the Babylonian
is credited with playing the role of most of the gods, besides being She the mother goddess, the goddess of wedlock and maternity. is regarded as being a storm and a war goddess ; as the giver of rivers, canals, flocks, etc. She is she presides over vegetation; identified with other goddesses, and in consequence partakes of Like Aphrodite, in their consorts. their attributes, or those of some also recognized as a dissolute she was parts of Babylonia,
The passage practiced in her name. goddess, and prostitution was to show seem Deut. 23 : 18 together with other evidences would that these immoral rites had been introduced from the West.
The
worship
was
In Egypt
of
carried to Egypt where Her chief and elsewhere. known as the goddess she was Anath "the and Astarte were
was
another
manifestation of 'Astarte, is pictured hand on a lion, holding flowers in one wearing rides on horseback,
and p.
nude
a
the
sun
and
may
moon
on
serpent
be another
of Astarte
the
same as
EM (Miiller
Ishtar,
was
156).
In Arabia
the deity Athtar, regarded
as
scholars maintain that 'Attar or late in Aram, is a modification ; although certain. On the Moabite stone (ninth
Some
century)
by
is identified with
Chemosh,
and
is also
regarded
scholars as masculine. in Many scholars hold that the original home of the goddess was Barton and others regard it as fairly well established Babylonia. Semitic deity, but that Arabia is its that Ishtar was a universal
home.
While
it is
one
mined, questions that cannot be deteris entitled to his or her view, there is little of the writer in the light of the above, that of those
174
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
and
very
probably
from
in the root 'tara, as a term finds the origin of the name connected with irrigation. Paton follows him and suggests that it applied to the numen "self waterer."6 of the spring and meant the attributes of the god Athtar for this conception, but scarcely on those of Ashtaroth-Ishtar. There is no way of determining whether the view that Ashirta
There
may
be
reasons
based
on
is the feminine
sonable of Ashir is correct, but it appears perfectly reathesis in spite of all the that have been raised. Metaobjections Ashrat became or could have taken place and Ashirta
Ashtar. Ashtartu.
Subsequently
ending Anathoth The place name of the Old Testament would Such forms as to contain a double feminine ending. seem also in the which occur qinnatate, feminine plural of qinnu "family,"
Babylonian
contract
the feminine
had beeu lost sight of, when the etymology could have been added, when Ashtar became
literature, must
a
Ata Aramaic
or
Atta
was
West
way.
in the
inscriptions.
It is found
name
in the Harran
Census,
A-ta-id-ri,and in A-ta-su-ri, Sa-ku-a-ta-a, etc., also in the Assyrian (See Tallqvist APN.) period.
Atar, the deity of the Aramaeans, as mentioned above, Athtar is regarded by some scholars as identical with the Arabian it is repreIn the Assyrian documents sented and the Biblical Ashtart. Attar
or
in the documents
name, name
names
A-tar-bi-'-di,
-kam-mu,
-idri, -qdmu,
-suri,
Syria. whose worship existed in the late period throughout Dagan, whose name is written Da-gan, Da-ga-an (Amarna 317: worwas 2),Da-gan-na, and Da-gu-na (BezoldCatalogue IV 1482), shipped but his original home seems in different parts of Amurru, been in the middle Mesopotamian region. As mentioned in the few tablets discovered above, Chapter IX, about a dozen names from the kingdom are as compounded of Hana coming
to have
6
"
Hastings
Encyclopaedia
XVII.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMTJEBTJ.
175
bear the title"priest of Dagan." and a number was In Tirqa, probably the chief city of Hana, Dagan apparently Shamshi-Adad, "king of Assyria, king of the the patron god. restored the temple of Dagan, and recorded himself as universe," The oath formulae of the contracts from a worshipper of that god.
that region show that the people The property Itur-Mer. recorded
swore
by Shamash,
one
in
of the deeds
and is said to be
Dagan,
that of these three deities (see Chapter XI). by the Philistines at Gaza In Canaan the deity was worshipped (1 Sam. 5: 1). There was also a (Judg. 16: 23),and at Ashdod Beth-Dagon Joppa, which was near temple of Dagan probably
(Josh.15 : 41). This fane and its surroundings are represented by the present site Beit Dejan,about six miles south-east of that city. There is another Beit Dejan about six miles south-east of Xablus ;
and
fortress above Jericho called Dagon a mentions a tablets was (Ant. XII 8: 1). One of the writers of the Amarna in I-ti-Da-gan occurs The personal name certain Dagan-takala. Josephus
a
Cappadocia
(Babyloniaca 1907
by
the in Babylonian
p.
19).
at
an
period.
The
to Babylonia
names
of Manisktusu.
Semites
are ruler several names compounded with the Dungi, in his thirty-seventh year, dedicated a
founded by of rulers of the Nisin Dynasty, which was from Amorite Mari, are an compounded with the god's name; Idin-Dagan Ishme-Dagan. Hammurabi in his Code namely, and
Two
names
More calls himself the warrior of Dagan. Assyria also bore the name Ishme-Dagan.
than
859 B.
(823-811B. C.), and other Assyrian kings claimed to be devotees of Anu and Dagan. There seems to be considerable difference of opinion concerning the nature of the god Dagan Dagon.7 is equated Since Dagan or
with Enlil
C), Shamshi-Adad
(CT
24 6
22
it etc.), seems
reasonable
a
to regard
him
as
is probably
see
West
"Dagon"
Semitic deity
in the Encyclopaedia
For
full discussion
on
liis nature,
Paton
of Religion and
Ethics.
176
( UMBS
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOEITES.
syllabaries Avhich he published, he finds Anu, Ea, and dIM grouped together, and also Dagan, Ea, Ishtar and Ishtar. In the Amorite syllabary he found El, Ea, and If his contention should prove together. correct, then grouped XI
1 39
f.). In the
name
Enlil, and Ea
occurs
are
in personal Eri-ba-dE-a-sarri, Ib-ni-dE-a-sa" ri, Xftr-dE-a-sarri, etc. names, as: This deity was at Calah, in which city Ashur-nasir-pal worshipped letters sent from In the Amarna established an image of him. Mitanni, Ea-sharru figures in two lists of deities: in one, Teshub, Shimike, and Ea-sharri; and in the other, ShiShaushka, Amon,
In the Cassite period the deity Ea-sharru
to see another syncretistic Are we and Ea-sharri. mike, Amon, Shar, written Shar, Shar-ri, LUGAL, formation in this name?
and
HI
in Hittite
names,
occurs
frequently,
as
Ha-at-tu-Shar,
It-H-ib-Shar, etc. (seeClay PN Ah-li-ib-Shar-ri, Shar was inclined to inquire at least whether
p.
33). One
or
feels
Semitic
Hittite
was
people ; Hero, who seest by of the dark-headed thine own ; and Hero, who ; Strong lord, directing mankind power p. 70). causest multitudes to repose in peace (seeJastrow RBBA
Sumer
Shepherd
origin of this deity based upon be said to be conclusive. As the by no means this evidence can Babylonians and other deities, it is reasonable to adopted Adad have adopted Sumerians that the "black-headed" may suppose is written in Sumerian this deity. Further, the fact that his name The
argument
proof of its origin than that Ashratu, the consort of Sumerian, whose name Amurru, was was written Nin-gu-edin-na (Eme-sal: Gdsan-gu-edin-na)"the lady of the plain." , implies. He was deity, as his name Originally Enlil was a storm is
no more a
His temple was called E-kur, which means god of the mountain. designated Nin-harHis consort was "house of the mountain."
XVII.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMUERU.
177
sag,
"lady
mountain."
He
extensively practiced, and which so greatly where agriculture was depended upon the winter rains, Enlil becomes a god of fertilityor an agricultural deity. Primarily, however, he is a veritable Adad, for
"he
causes
the heavens
to tremble
Moreover
in the Sumerian
hymn
broader
general
the
deity of Nippur, in the the chief patron found in that Name Syllabaries of the time of the First Dynasty occurs only twice, unless it is assumed, with Chiera city, his name t {UMBS XI 38 ff.),hat it is represented by the ideogram dIM.
was
in of the later triad, Anu, Enlil, and Ea, there appears dIM. As Ea, the Semitic lists, the triad, Anu, stated and the attributes of the deity dIM are identical with those of above,
Instead
Enlil, the god of the storm and atmospheric conditions. Gir was as well as the the name a deity in the land of Amurru of tions name of a country (seeChapter III). In the West Semitic inscripa
number
milki
C^OIJ,
which
compounded with the deity, as Gir^SDIJ. 'ttmj.etc. See Cook North Semitic Inscriptions), of
names are
that his worship was continued up to a dependent largely upon evidence from
for the existence of this Amorite god. dGir sa birqi "Gir of the lightning," sa sadi "of the mountains" is also identified with dKur-Gal (=Amurru), dMar-tu (=Amurru), and
dSAR-SAR
an
(see CT 24 89-94). dG\r is also identified with Nergal importation from the West {CT 25 50: 15). The sign is also
in the ideographic
25 17:
found
writing
of his
name.
dGIR-GIR-it=dIM
(CT
31). dSar-ra-pu^=dSar-g\r-ra Marki i. e. "Shar-Girra Line (CT 25 35 : 24) is another syncretistic formation.
text reads
element appears Nin-Zu-Gir, the deity (or Su) also written Tello, who is identified with the West Semitic In-Urta. In this of connection it is natural to think also of the deity En-Gur, in the
same
Sar-Gir-ra-Suki. The
Kin-Gir-Zu
name
of the founder of the Ur Dynasty, since the change from Gar to Gor (writtenGur) offers no difficulty. The comparison is at
178
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
ruler's
name
tic of other rulers of this dynasty bearing SemiDun-gi is not the pronunciation Even of the second in the Sumerian name by the complement ra as shown
a ',,
dDun-Gi-ra-kalam-m
that these Sumerian
It is not improbable others. and perhaps Since the Semitic names. forms represent
phonetic change of g into m is well established in Sumerian, the latter being the Eme-sal for the former, and as so many cuneiform
signs
beginning it may
whether
connected even has the reading Su-mu-qa-an, It is to be noted also that GIR Su-mu-ug-ga, and Sak-kan (CT 29 46: 8, 9) ; also Sa-kan (CT 12 Gir-sakan 3j). This may be found in the West Semitic name formation like Gir-Ba'al a name { pD"U), perhaps Gir-'Ashteroth (mnE"JTU). Note also the formula dBabbar-ge=d
Hani
occurs
with g, the question arises with m also appear not be possible that Gir and Mar are dialectically in names found in the West.
(7JD"U)
GIR
=
and dumu
"""^^GtR,
CT
24 32: 112.
UR-dHa-ni,
found on Babylonian tablets, cf. in several names dHa-ni-ra-bi and Gal-dHa-ni, etc., of the Ur Dynasty; Ha-ni-be-el-gas-si of the Ea-an-da-di, Census the names and
would
seem
Ha-an-su-ri, and Bir-Ha-a-nu occur, which the deity with that part of the region. Hani
50:
to associate
ku-nu-uk
"lord
8) ; and also is called ilu sa dupsarruti (Shurpu II: 175). He together with Nisaba
(see
The only trace of the worship of Lahmu and Lahamu. in Judah, Beth-Lehem in the West is in the well known place name about seven represented by Bet Lahm, and also in Zebulun, now
These deities figure prominently of Nazareth. miles north-west in the Marduk-Tiamat creation legend, which as previously shown 44 ff.). The names from the West (seeAmurru of also emanated
to have been used in the composition the deities do not seem of Assyrians. In fact besides the by the Babylonians names and legend adopted by the Assyrians, in which the names creation they are only found in late Syllabaries, where they are desoccur,
XVn.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMUKRU,
1~!4
ignated
as
; see
Deimel
theon Pan-
Marduk
of
a
has been regarded as being the contracted pronunciation Semitic Amar-Utug, the West combining syncretized name is The basis for this assumption Amur Amar or with Utug.
Amar-Utug
of the Marduk-Tiamat fact that the Marduk originated in the West, except there is
an
U-ri-Marduh
(B. 11566),the personal name Cassite period (Clay PN), together with the
=
dA-ma-ru
Semitic.
If the
name
through
in the complete absence of the use of the name in spite of the claims of the Pan-Babylonists that the West, from Babylonia. imported Canaanitic civilization was
almost
Marduk
mentioned is the name
was
As the city is scarcely the local god of Babylon. in the inscriptions prior to the First Dynasty, neither Even in the Name Syllabaries of that of Marduk.
not
occur.
with the ascendancy of Babylon he became the chief god of the pantheon, when under Hammurabi he supplanted all other gods. The nomenclature thereafter of all the Babylonian citiesshowed the extensive influence of his worship.
period
it does
But
And
mony continued to be the centre of the hegefor nearly two thousand years. established by Hammurabi Mash the name was as of a deity in Amurru well as the name There was of a country and a mountain. also a city named
as
is known,
Babylon
(seeChapter XII). Although the god of Mash" has not been heretofore recognized in the West, it would seem that his name is probably compounded in that of a hero in David's time,
"place
Ki-Mash
Mash-mannah
(1 Chron.
8:
12:
10) ; in Mish-'am
a (Di'u'2), name
in
Benjamin (1 Chron.
('JHt^O, 1
Mishraites 12) ; and in the gentilic name Chron. 2 : 53). In Amurru it was that perhaps conjectured
in the absence of any etymological explanation of Shamash, it may have been from Sa Mash like the "(the god) of Mash," Arabic Dhil'l Shard etc., in other words that the mountain Mashu his habitat (seeAmurru was p. 127).
The
consort
of Mash
was
called the children is also a name p. 200). Mash of the god is used interchangeably with dNin-IB.
are
Mashtu.
They
180
THE
EMPIRE
OP
THE
AMOKITES.
found on the business equivalent, fiUHJN. for the name, Sons seemed to point to the reading documents of Murashu is also possible, which En-Ushtu En-Mashtu the god's name. as The Aramaic
or In-Urta. could be from En-Urta It was that the (p.78, and MI 1 ff.) also contended in Amurru deity Mash was carried by the Semites to Babylonia at a very early time. In the first three dynasties, Kesh, Erech, and Ur, names EspeMesh cially or compounded with the deity Mash predominate.
in the early period do we find evidence of the worship deity. Some have translated this element as meaning of this is said to mean Mes-ki-ag-nun-na "hero," the name as for example
at Erech
"the
hero
the
beloved
"Mesh
Rather
or
does
it
mean
"Mesh
setting forth the hero character for believing that were not given at birth ; and we have no reason Gilgamesh Chapter they are titles. (See the discussion on the name beloved."
Unu(g)kiearly passage, reading galu dMes sangu (BE 2 87 1: 30) ; ga of the god Mesh, the priest of Erech" Mes the early seal reading Nin-Unugki e Unugki en "Nin-Uruk, de high priest of the god Mesh, in the temple of Erech" (Collection
VIII.)
The
"man
dumu Ur-Mesh Lu-Unugki "Urpersonal names Mesh, son of Awil-Uruk (RA VIII p. 31), show conclusively that in Erech (see Misc. Insc. p. 3). a deity Mesh was worshipped
Clercq
83),the
be inferred from the probably character of the deity may Uru"ru maaSMas (CT 24 10: 8); in other syncretistic formation that Mash was a deity similar to the mountain or stormwords Mashu, The association of the god with the mountain deity Uru.
The
as
above, would
way.
seem
to support
another
The
name
god
Nergal
West.
"Mesh sends of Nergal is Mesh-Lam-Ta-e below under forth the sprout," this deity is from Amurru (see and Mesh, and Mish are that figure Mash, Nergal). also elements Another
in the temple names prominently of Nineveh, Cutha, and Akkad. is also regarded by the writer as being of West Semitic Nabu figures prominently origin (Amurru p. 144). The fact that his name
in the nomenclature Semitic peoples; of West and that in Moab there was a city Nebo (Numb. 32: 3, 38),probably near Mt. Nebo, the place of Moses' death (Numb. 33: 47),as well as a
XVn.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMTJBBU.
181
(Ezr. 2: 29),make it appear highly city in Judah by that name in Amurru. What probable that the original home of the deity was is especially confirmatory is of this conjecture the fact that in the
Akkadian rabi of the period of Hammudoes not appear ; but in the Amorite Syllabary the the name Owing to the great ingress of Amor1-zi-Na-bu-u is found. Name
Syllabary from
Nippur
name
ites in this period some names are compounded with that of Nabu. The deity also received recognition on the part of the kings. In is cared Hammurabi's the beloved temple of Nabu" reign, "Ezida date for his sixteenth year reads : ' ' The year in which See also the twenty-seventh built." the throne of Nabu was year III 193, 235, and 250). Earlier than this, Ammi-ditana (L1H of for. The
we
have
no
knowledge
was
recognized.
may
however,
greater.
the antiquity
or
of his shrine
a
be shown
in
Nashhu Harran
Nashuh
as
is
deity found
etc.
frequently This
names
of the rarely
Census,
Nashhu-gabri,
form
occurs
outside of these tablets (see Tallqvist APN). In the inscriptions of Ashurbanipal is frequently the fire-god Nusku referred to. This king restored his temple, E-melam-anna
in Harran.
his texts also we to Sin, Girru, In-Urta, and Nergal.8 His consort's name is Sadarnunna. the Harran Census, Johns proposed
From
learn that he is closely related These are West Semitic gods. In publishing that Nusku was the tablets of very likely a
in the Census appears god originally, and that his name Nashhu. This being correct Nashhu doubtless more correctly represents
At
an
Syrian
the actual pronunciation of his name early date the worship of this West
at Nippur,
where
his
name
Nergal
an
is another name which the ideographic writing Ne-Uru-Gal; of and importation from the West {Amurru 114 ff.). Other
are
pronunciatio
also
of
gods are (Amurru, or Mari), and from Suki, is a district in Mesopotamia which (CT 25 35: 24-26). The name d Mes-Lam-Ta-e "the god Mesh probably means sends forth fruit
etc.
this deity
These
two
said to have
come
See Streck VB
VII
3 p. 762 and
Tallqvist APN
p. 259.
182
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
habitat of Mesh is thus Mash, or who regarded as identical with Nergal, as noted above, is the mountain Marduk, Like the contracted pronunciation Mash. also which in the West in Babylonia, the form Nergal was arose not used prior to the exile,with one exception, which the inscription of which at Ta'anach; (NI-NI) apil Ha-ab-si-im arad Ne-Uru-Gal Habsim,
occurs on
reads: "Atanah-ili,
son
of of
Western Whether
Nergal
The seal was servant of Nergal." origin, but the script is Babylonian.
the
unquestionably read
or
ideogram
or
Ne-Uru-Gal
whether it was
was
simply in Palestine, perhaps the name god worshipped of some It should be emphaGir, Mash, Uru, etc., cannot be determined. sized in the early period, that this is the only known use of the name
in this instance,
the civilization of Palestine when according to the Pan-Babylonists to be essentially Babylonian. is supposed Eesheph "lightning," "flame," the lord of heaven, lord of eternity from the late and ruler of the gods, the warrior, is well known
to the inscriptions of northern Syria. As far as known inscriptions. in the cuneiform writer, this deity is not mentioned He figures, however, in Egypt, where he is depicted wearing a high his conical cap, to which often is tied a long ribbon falling over
Aramaic
ries gazelle. He carIn his back. a quiver on a shield, spear, club, and sometimes a syncretistic form inscription he is called Reshpu-Saramana,
is ornamented
that he is identified with the god Shalman. mean which may forms Together with Min (a harvest deity)and Qedesh,Eesheph a triad in Egypt (seeMuller EM p. 155).
Shamash,
in the Amarna
letters, is looked upon as the leading It may be due to the fact that the chief was nent solar, that he occupied such a promi-
place in the salutations of the Amorite princes to the Pharaoh, Shamash, my god, my lord." in which he is called "my Gaza, perhaps the personal The place name Beth-Shemesh near
name
Shimshon
(Samson),as
well
as
names
An important his worship. cian tablets, show how widespread was trict, disfound in the Mesopotamian worship was centre of Shamash invoked in the foremost of the triad who were where he was
XVn.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMURRU.
183
Dagan, the oath formulae of the Hana contracts : Shamash, Itur-Mer (seeChapter XI). At an early period the Semites his worship into Babylonia, where in the cities Sippar Larsa he became
and
carried
and
the patron deity. He is perhaps the best known god in the Babylonian and Assyrian pantheons. The deity Shamash was early carried to Arabia, and looked upon Winckler held the view that the deity was as a goddess. ered consid-
feminine
the
name
As mentioned above, also in early Hittite groups.9 Name Syllabary, Tn-li-id-dSamfound in the Nippur
deity here
was
construed
as
feminine.
(See
Sbaru.
among
lands.
is a god Sharu that has figured very prominently the Semites in Amurru and Babylonia, as well as in other in Babylonia, An important centre of his worsbip was at Umma, There
present
His name in this region was called Jokha. lagab with igi-gimu inserted, the correct written with the ideogram bary by the Yale Syllareading for which, namely Shara, is made known (MI 53 : 111). As in the case of the god Uru or Amurru (see
at
like Shara, pronounced Sharru, etc., without regard for the meaning also of the signs, were by the scribes to reproduce the pronunciation employed of the values
name,
Chapter
as
IM
meaning
"wind";
BAR
meaning LUGAL
"court,
meaning "vegetable
pronounced
"field," SHAR meaning meaning etc., all these signs having growth"; values like Shar, Shara, Sharru, were used by the scribes to
MARUN
totality";
reproduce the sound of the deity's name, who had been introduced in Babylonia from the West. With this practice of the ancient Langdon by his criticism and assertions apparently does scribes, to be acquainted (RA 13 p. 161). not seem
9
10
See Mittcilungen
MARUN
=
No. Orient-GescUschaft
AGAR
=
sara
184
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
is also written phonetically Sha-ra, Sha-a-ru, Shar-ru, Shar-ra, Shar-ri, etc. Perhaps also Sheru, or Sher11 is to be included as represented in West Semitic names, as Se-ir-id-ri, Sername
The
ila-a-a,etc.
and probably
and other elements are is to be read Shara, that this ideogram letters, which is usually written dE-a-LUGAL Amarna
LUGAL
(seeunder
Ea).
especially in names of the early Babylonian in the periods, see Sdr-ru-ba-ni, Sdr-ru-tab, etc., and probably names Sar-ga-ni-Sar-ri and Bi-in-ga-ni-Sar-ri(BA VI 3 85 ff.).In Sharu
appears
the Ur
Dynasty
many
names
are
compounded
in which Shar appears as other compounds of temples and deities, see the writer's Misc. Inscr. p. 15. A large number the Hittite-Mitannian among of personal names
are
Shar, cf. Ha-at-tu-Sar, Ah-li-ib-Sar-ri, It-hi-ib-Sar,tc. (seeClay PN). Note also the names e with Shara, source, which are probably from the same which have been collected
constituted with
a
god
by Sundwall
the
; and if so with which question arises whether this deity is the same people, the Semitic or Hittite, did his worship originate. If they have a common probable that the Hittites may have origin, it seems
borrowed
the Semites;
as
did in several other instances. The Syllabaries associate the god Ilu-Mer, Nergal, In-Urta, etc., which
as
Shara
Gir, Mur,
shows regarded This would seem to indicate that he was "a The idea that he was a solar or storm-god. vegetation god" has proposed or "the god of flocks," which Langdon (RA 13, 161), to be justified seems alone by the employment of two of the signs
similar in character.
(seeabove). To used to reproduce the pronunciation of his name differentiate between deities as being solar-gods, vegetation-gods
or
storm-gods
11
is
more
or
is depen-
Cf. Ser
the Aramaic
4306),a meaning
from the
name
' '
like
XVn.
THE
DEITIES
OF
AMUBBU.
185
dent upon
the
sun
Moreover,
solar-deities
are
also
vegetation-gods. Sin was his worthe chief deity of Harran, ship whence apparently time. The Assyrian an at emanated early scribes who made Si-', Census in the seventh century the name the Harran wrote
showing that they heard
(See god Sin. Berossus's If the eighth name of antediluvian Am elSin, it to represent is correctly understood kings, 'Ajue/i^u'os,
which was Chapter XL)
is the earliest reference to the name worship of Sin into Babylonia in an
names
name
in that district
known.
Semites The
brought
the
of Sin and the deity in the country south of Palestine. as Hadramoth as far south into Arabia Wilderness
II).12
has literature whose deity in the cuneiform name He is known Za-mal-mal, as been read Za-ma-ma, and Za-ga-ga. This the patron deity of Kish, an early Semitic city in Babylonia.
Zababa
is
deity has been identified with Inurta (dNin-IB),alled mar restum c in the Hammurabi Code ; and is "the first son of Ekur" saEkur later regarded as "the Marduk of battle." bary The writer has shown from the recently published Chicago Syllain the name 37 328 f.)that MA was (seeJAOS read ba, thus Za-ba-ba; the name approaches and noted that this pronunciation
of the god Ekron, that perhaps later also suggested tern we more would evidence of a deity in Wesin Zabub or Zabab, whose name was named reproduced Za-ba-ba. it was found that this had Subsequently
namely
Ba'al
Zebub.
It
was
find
Asia
cuneiform (MVAG 18 4 p. 70 f.)in his already been anticipated by Winckler advanced notices of the new cuneiform material found at the HitIn it,he called attention to the prominent tite centre Boghaz-koi. role Za-ba-ba and
among
the Hittites
he seemed to think was as prominently He had a temple in the capital ably and probwas the chief deity of Ellaia and Arzia which is inferred from the part his name played in the great political treaties. The existence the cult of Zababa held, these peoples, Winckler among of allied peoples, whom Teshup. as worshipped
12
Note
VS
VII
95
4.
186
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
was
due
to colonization
or
Zababa had the same when If this statement could be supported by evidence of the influence force. of the Marduk cult in the West it would have more
The
disadvantage
on
in this instance
early Amorite,
or
native
sources
is
here again felt,in that the date of the earliest reference to the deity history is so much earlier than the tablets referred in Babylonian to the writer that Winckler has to. In spite of this fact, it seems the order reversed ; and that Zababa is really a, deity like Inurta
in the he is identified,who was extensively worshipped with whom West ; and was coveries carried to Kish at a very early date. Further diswill determine whether this is correct.
syncretistic name Zababa Probably was battle and the foremost this idea.
v
The
dTJr-d Zababa
also
son a
(CT
24 8:
5) is to
discovery which has recently become known may prove is to be read Hbaba instead of Zababa. Langdon that the name dZAhas kindly informed the writer that the equation il-ba-ba Another
=
MA-MA dMA
occurs
on
Berlin
dedicated to Hommel.
(CT
25, 27
in spite of Luckenproposed
reading
of
apparent
-with the collapse of the Arabian origin theory of this culture (seeChapter II) in the light of what has been offered, and also what might be assembled, tion, that no other conclusion is possible. As set forth in the introducSemites from Amurru entered the valley at a very early period.
having
Under
new
culture developed differently, and when emigration or invasion took place, what had been in the "melting for a millennium, though pot" still call Akkadian, which we strikingly different. This evolutionary process needs no explanation for history shows it has gone on in all ages, and is going on at present, and will continue to go as long as the world lasts.
was
Semitic,
INDEX.
A-ba-ia, 113 A-ba-ra-ha-am, 41 A-ba-ra^ma, 41 129 Abbi-Teshshub, Abdi-Ashirta, 127 Abdi-Hiba, 129 Abesha, 144 Abi-esuh, Abi-hud, 165 Abi-melech, 165 Abirshua, 62 Abraham, Ab-ram, 165 Abu, 36 Abu-Simbel, 59 A-da-ad, 165 II, 159 Adad-nirari d 70 o-da-odlH^ Adapa, 77, 83 Adgi, 166 f Ad-gi-ilu, 167 Adgi-Siri, 167
Aleppo. 124 f 112 Al-eshshum, 34 Almaqu-hu, 167 Al-Nashu, Aloros, 76. 78, 106 168 Anathoth, Anbay. 34. 35 34 An-Kurah.
Anna, An-ram,
168
Al-Si', 167
109, 110 Al Wurdi. Amait, 141 68 Amar-a-pa-', 54 Aman-hashir, Amar-ma-'-a-di, 68
Amar-na-ta-nu, Amar-ra-pa^',
Antu,
68
139
68 Amar-sa-al-ti, 68 dAmar-Vtug, 25, passim 76, 78 Amegalarus, 77 Amel-Aruru, Amel-dEl-Amar, Amel-Sin, 78 Amel-"ru, 78
Areli, 72
Ari. 72 Ariel,72 Arik-den-ilu. 159 37 Arpaehshad. "' Ar-iva-da, 72, 78 Ar-wit-u. vn Asaph. 55
A-sa-ru-um, Ashir,
68
Ad-gi-si-ri-zdr-bad-du,
167
A-du-na-i-zi, 165 A-du-ni-ba-' 165 -al, A-du-ni-ili-a,165 Aelian, 84 78 A-ga-al-Marduh, Agum-kakrime, 99. 116 A-HA, 83 Ahi-Jami, 54 36 Ahi-wcdum, 1, 144 Ahmose Ahu, 36 Ain Shems. 55 Ainsworth, W. F., 109,
110 Akkukarib,
36
Amemphsinus, II, 147 Amenhotep III, 126 f. Ainenhotep 147 IV, 126 Amenhotep Amillaros, 106 'amir, 67
76, 78
170
170
Asir-Samsi, 171
Ashirta, 171 Ashirta-washur, 54 Ashtaroth. 172 Ashtaroth-Karnaim.
JAs-tar-te, 172
amiramu, 6
'Amm, 34, 36,41 67 a mutant, 76, 78 Ammenon.
172
Ashur-uballit. 159 164 Ashtar-Chemosh, 99 Ashurbanipal, Asit. 141 A-ta or Atta. 174 A-ta^id-ri. 174 A-ta-im-ah-Ui, 182
A-Kur-Gal,
Alaparus,
A-mu-ur-ri-iki, 66 Amurru, 167 Ana. 116 ff Anat, 141 Anatho, 108, 115, 118
(J87)
l.ss
THE
EMPIKE
OF
THE
AMOBITES.
A-usar, 170 Aziru, 127 ff Ba'alath, 65, 140 Ba-ah-lu-ti, 115 Balata, 55 Balbi, 109 Ba-lu, 80 Bana-sa-Addu, 81 Barton, G. A., 28, 8], 90. 124, 140, 173 f Baudissin, W. W., 140 Beka',66 Be-la-qu, 81 Bell, Gertrude L., 109, 110, 117 Beni Jafna, 48 Bera',41 Berossus, 76, 79, 95 Beth-Anath, 74 Beth-' Am', 169 Beth-Dagon, 175 Beth-Lehem, 178
Cook, G. A., 177 Cook, S. A., 162 Conder, C. R, 44 Corsote, 110 Cowley, A., 65 Craig, J. A., 168 da-ga-ma, 98 Dagan, 175 Damiq-ilishu, 79 Damascus, 42, 119, 122 f Darmeseq, 42 Da (v)onus, 76, 78 Decapolis, 48 De Goeje, M. J., 28 Deimel, A, 165 Delitzsch, P., 9, 13, 124 Der Aban, 55 Dhaw, 34 DlnVl Shara, 179 34 Dhii-Samwa, Diarbekr, 97 a,Di-mas-qa, 122 dDumu-Zi, 80, 82 f, 95 Dumu-Zi-Ab-Zu, 83 Dun-gi, 20, 97, 126 dD an-Gi-ra-kalam-ma,
178 Dur-Igitliin, 112 Dur-Isharlim, 112 Du-'-v^zu, 82 Ea, 175
El Jezireh, 50 Ellil-bani, 158 El-muti, 90 El-ra-bi-ih, 114 'El-Shaddai, 167 E-lu, 80 El-tlr,71, 106 dEn-Amas, 25 En-bi-As-tar, 172 dEn-Din-tirki, 25
en-gi-du, 85 dEn-ki-du, 85 f dEn-lil, 25, 176 Enlil-bani, 79 dEn-lil-labira,158 Enmastu, 73 En-Me-Dur-An-Ki, 77 En-Me-ir-Kar, 69, 80, 82 Enurasat, 73 En-Ur-ta, 74 E-ta-na, 80, 81, 95
B-ud-gal-gal, 125 Eusebius, 76, 79, 90
Bit-Karkara,
Bit-Nin-IB,
124 74
bit 111 su-ri-b[i], fBi-it-ti-dDa-gan, 113 Bliss, F. J., 53 Bold, P., 26, 34, 72 Breasted, J. H., 101, 139 f 142 Briinnow, R. E., 23 Bu-la-aq-qu, 81 Burehardt, M., 138, 142 f Byblos, 126 f, passim Chantre, E., 131 Chedorlaonier, 97 Chiera, E., 36, 61, 80, 87 f, 114, 175, 177 Cernik, 109 Cicero, 52 Condamin, A., Ill
,
Ea(En-Ki)-bdni(Du),
85 E-Anna, 169 Eannatum, 90 Ea-sarri, 176
Faluja,81 Fuye, Allotte de la, 74 Gardiner, 65 Gari, 121 68 Galu-dAmar-Dingir, dGestin-An-na, 84 Gezer, 53 Ghassanides, 48
Gimil-A-nim, 169 Gir, 177 Gir-'Ashteroth, 178 Gir-Ba'al, 178 Giri-Dadda, 164 121 GlR-GIR, dGlR-GlR-u, 177 Gir-sakan, 178 dGir sa birqi, 177 dGis, 88 dGis-bil-ga-Mesh, 80, 84 Golenischeff, V. S., 131 Goshen, 43 Gressnian, H., 88 Grice, E. M., 12, 21, 92,
114
dEa-tabu(Dug), 85 Ebed-Uru aim, 78, 106 Eber, 37 Ed-Der, 111 Edoranchus, 76, 78 Ekisigga, 111 Elam, 82 dEl-Amurru
El-data, 72 'El-'Elyon, Elephantine, 63 El-Ghor, 121 Eliezer, 62
Gubin, 97
INDEX.
189
Ja-a-ma, 54 112 Ja'mu-Dagan, Ja-ri-ib-dAdad, 115 Jaskur-ilu, 40 '-dDa^gan, "Ja-as-mch 26, 115 Jasmah-el, 40 Jastrow, Marcus, 70 Jastrow, M.. Jr.. 80. 85, 88, 89, 132, 173. 176 82 Ja-u-i(mi) -ba-an-da, Jensen. P., 9, 131 Jeremias, A., 77 Johns, C. H. W.. 113, 131, 157 Joktan, 37 Josephus, 66. 138 Ka-lu-mu-un, 80 Kara Eyuk, 131 Karnak, 59 158 Ka(?)-sha-Ashir, Kashtiliashu, 112 Khnum-hotep. 144
Gudea, 33, 96 f Guli-Addi, 54 93 Gungunu, Gur-raki, 121 Ha-ba-ru, 46 habbatu, 45 Habiri, 43, 44, 45 f Ha-bi-ir-si,46 Ha^ab-si-im, 182 Hab ur-ibal-Bugash, 112 Hadad, 165 Hadad-Rimmon, 164 33, 34 Hadhramotians, Hagar, 118 Hagir, 34 Halabu, 124, 125 Haleb, 124 Halevy, J.,23 Halis, 115 Hallapu, 124 Halma, 82, 95 Halman, 124 Hilprecht, H. V., 93 Hammurabi, 97. 113 f Hammurabih, 113 ha 'amori, 66 hamustum, 131, 133 Hani, 98 f, 178 Harran, 119 f Hat-hor, 140 Ha-at-tu-Shar, 176 Haupt, P., 67 Ha-sa-el, 47 Hebron, 47 Hermitage, 123 Hobab, 88 Holma, H., 69 Hommel, F., 31, 33, 36, 39, 73, 77, 114, 121, 167, 186 Hrozny, F., 171 Humba, 87 Hu-um-ba-ba, 87, 95 Humurtu, 57, 126 Huntington, E., 3 Huwal, 34 Hu-wa~wa, 86 ff Hu-un-ni-ni, 105, 123
'
Iarmuti, 95 Ibi-Sin, 97, 134 Ibn Doraid, 39 'Ibri,45 Idin-dRI, 170 169 [Id]-sa-A-na, Ikununi, 133 f Mini ha-ab-bi-ri.45 45 ildni SA-GAS, Il-Ashirta, 167 Il-Ba', 73, 186 il-ba-ba,186 II Fakhr. 34 dIl-Ha~al-larbu, 125, 166 Ili~i-ma-dWe-ir, 69 I-li-Me-ir. 69 Il-ka-Me-ir, 69 Il-Kanshan, 167 Ilmaqqah, 34 Il-Tammesh, 167 Il-Tehri, 167 Il-Teri. 167 d w.1--"-,r/"] 70i 167 Ilu-sliuma, 156 Ilu-We-ir, 166 Im-me-ir-i-H, 78 dIM-ra, 70 Irzi, 109 'Ishara, 109, 111 Isharlim, 116 Isbi-Urra, 90, 106, 107 islit. 40 Isbki-Bal, 94 Ishkun-Nergal, 21 I-su-il, 90 Isidore of Charax, 81, 108 Islam, 48 Is-re-il, 0 9 I-tur-Me-ir, 69, 112. 164 I-zi-Na-bu-u, 181 Jacob-hur, 139 Jadah-lialum, 39 Jadah-ilu, 39 Ja-ab 104, 105 164 Jahweh-Sabaoth, Jahweh-Shalom, 164
,
EUn-gi(r)-rd(DU ),122
Kikia, 156, 158 Kikkinu, 113 Ki-Mashki. 37. passim King, L. W., 30, 33, 40, 86, 91, 96, 157 f Kin-gin. 122 Ki-sa-ah-bu-ut, 115 Kittel, R., 77 Knudtzon. J. A.. 121 Kraeling, E. G. H., 120 Krausz, J., 167 Kudur-Nahundi, 99 kur-amitr, 67 La-ab-a-an. 159 Lahmu, 178 77 LAL-ilr-al im-ma Langdon. S. H., 67, 73, 85, 183, 186 Larsa Dynasty, 91 Libit J.shtar. 91 limmu, 131, 133 Luckenbill, D. D., 29, Ja-[ku]-un-A-sa-ru-um, 42, 73, 114, 157. 159, 171 185 f
.
LiiO
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMORITES.
82 Lugal-zaggisi, 20, 90 Lulubu, 126 Lnschan, F. von, 60 Lute, H. F., 12, 41, 140,
Lugai-Bdn-Da,
Mer-ka-gi-na,
d
69
167 Macalister, R. A. S., 30,54 53, 55 Mackenzie, Madga, 97 Magan, 33 Malgu, 105, 119 Malik, 164 Manetho, 138 90 Manishtusu, 33 Mannu-dannu,
Mar, 69 103 Maratha,
me-ir-me-riJ]y"_l_J]y[ Meissner, B., 66, 91 Meri-ba'al,70 Merneptah, 149 Mer, Mir, 69 Merra, 107 Meyer, E., 23, 28, 60, 79, 132, 135 dMes, 180 80 Mes-An-Ni-Pad-da, Mesheq, 123 80 Mes-Ki-Ag-Nun-na, Mes-ki-in-ga-se-ir, 80 106, 180 Mes-Lam-Ta-e,
Nedyt, 140 Nergal, 181 Nergal-gar-ra, 21 Ne-Uru-Gal, 25 :1 Niebuhr, Prof., 121 Nikkal, 141 Nimrod, 156 dNin-a-dam-azag-ga,
25:1 dNin-Gal, 25 :1 dNin-Gir-Su, 25 dNin-Gis-Zi-Da, 84 Nin-gu-edin-na, 176 Nin-har-sag, 176 dNin-lB, 25 dNin-igi-zi-bar-ra,25 ki, 70 d "imN-IMmu^u dNin-Marki,
Mes-Za-Mug(?),80
Mil-ki-U-ri, 71 Mil-ku-ru, 71 33, 34 Minaeans, 90 Mir-Dadu, Mish-'am, 179 Montgomery, J. A., 11, 169 Mordecai, 10 Morgan, J. P., Library
Nin-Numusda, Nin-Sun, 84
d
73
niNin-urVr, 71 Ninurtu, 73
*Nm-uru(PIN),74
73 Nisaba, 118 Niswar, 34 Norris, F. A., 31 Nu-bdn-da, 82 Nukara, 141 Og, 100 Olmstead, A. T., 12, 79, 81, 96, 103, 109, 115 On-Heliopolis, 139 Ophel, 55 Orion, 140 Osiris, 140 Otiartes, 77, 78 Pa-gi-rvm, 113 Pallacopas, 81 Paton, L. B., 28, 36, 42. 162, 165, 174 f Pekah, 122 Peleg, 37, 81 Pepi I, 143 Peters, J. P., 109, 117 Petra, 27, 47
Ninurut,
of, 81, 113 Moriah, 68, 153 34 Motab-Natiy"n, Miiller, W. M, 139 ft', 170, 172, 182, 185 Mur, 69
Murashu, Mur-ra,
d
44 70
Mar(TUR)-su-ri,m
Mar-sam-si, 69 dMar-tu-ba-an-da,
Mash,
Mursil, 129
mu-ri(n)IM) JQ dMu-u-ru-u, 70
82
179 73 ma-a-su, 179 Mash-mannah, 80 Mas-Sal-Nun-na, Mashtu, 179 Mashu, 37 73 ma-asu, Maynard, J. A., 73 Medinet, 59 78, 106 Megal-Uru, 55 Megiddo, Me-is-tu, 124 Meluhha, 97
Musri, 43 Na-ba-a-a-te, 47 Nabataean, 47 Na-bat-ai, 47 Nablus, 55 Nabu, 180 72 Nabii-rimannu, 39 Nakarum, 164 Nannar-Gir-Gal, Naram-Sin, 33 Nashhu, 120, 181 Nasr, 34 Naville, M., 45
INDEX.
191
I'i-li-qam, 80, 81 Pilter, W. T., 36. 40, 41 Pinches, T. G., 131 81 Pir'-Amurru,
Pir'-Mer, 69 Pir'-Vru, 69
P?-sa-A-"a, 169 Plutarch, 140 Poebel, A., 35, 77, 80, 83, 85, 88, 96, 107 Pognon, H., 38, 73 Prince, J. D., 22. 114 Put-Ahi, qani,
130
Schnable, P., 79 Schoff, "W. H., 117 Schrader, E., 28 Sebastiyah, 55 Sebek-khu, 144 Sellin,E., 54 Semachoros, 84 84 Semak-Jau, 84 Semak-Ur, Seriiblt el Khadim, Sesostris 1, 143 Sesostris III, 144 Seti 1, 129, 148 Shalim-ahu, 158 Shalman,"l41, 182
65
Sinai, :J4 Sin-iqisham, 115 Sinuhe, 56, 79, 143 dSir-du, 83 Sisimordakos, 35 Snefru, 142 Solomon, 100 f Sprenger, 28 Steuernagel, 121 Stratonike, 88 Streck, M., 181 St. Stephen, 107 Su-abu, 156 Suhi, 115, 117 ff
sumu,
40
8a Mash,
Shamash-resh-usur,
"
Samas-wedmn-usur,
36
Shara, 183 dShar-bdn~da, 80, 82, 95. 1l'4 Shar-Girru, 164, 181
Marki, 111 dSar-gir-ra
dSUR, 68 Syncellus, 76 Tabba-edi, 36 Tahba^wedi, 36 Ta'lab, 34 Tallqvist, K, 181, tamertu, 67 Ta-mu-zu, 82 Ta'anach, 54, 62, 63
Tell el-Hesy, 53 Tell Mutesellim, 55 Teshub, 18, 166 82 Thammoza, Thilutha. 119 F., Thureau-Dangin, 73. 92. 96, 114. 131.
133 1. 127. 145 Thutmose II, 145 f Thutmose Thutmose III, 48, 53, 56, 100, 145 f IV, 147 Thutmose Tiamat, 139 82, 121, 124 Tidnum, Tiglath-pileser 1, 119.
160
Tmkarum,39
Tirqa, 111, 112, 118 Tofteen, O. A.. 66, 161 Torrey, C. C., 12
192
THE
EMPIRE
OF
THE
AMOBITES.
Vr-ru-da
77, 78
Tu-li-id-dSamsi{si)
,
dUmun-bad-urudunagar-ki, 25 :1 Uni, 143 Ungnad, A., 41, 91 Ur of the Chaldees, 102 73 u-ra-su, Urbillu, 126 Uri, 108 'Uria, 70, 73, 168 UR-Inurta, 91, 93 U-ri-im-me-i, 71
Zimmern, 77
a'Uri(URU)-wa-da,18
Uri-wada, 72 Ur-Nina, 20 Ur-ra-gal, 71 Urra-imitti, 90, 106
60. S9.
.-um-Shaniash.
105
II